Harry Potter and the Sorcerer's Stone
CHAPTER ONE
THE BOY WHO LIVED
Mr. and Mrs. Dursley, of number four, Privet Drive, were proud
to say that they were perfectly normal, thank you very much. They
were the last people you'd expect to be involved in anything strange
or mysterious, because they just didn't hold with such nonsense.
Mr. Dursley was the director of a firm called Grunnings, which
made drills. He was a big, beefy man with hardly any neck, although
he did have a very large mustache. Mrs. Dursley was thin and blonde
and had nearly twice the usual amount of neck, which came in very
useful as she spent so much of her time craning over garden fences,
spying on the neighbors. The Dursleys had a small son called Dudley
and in their opinion there was no finer boy anywhere.
The Dursleys had everything they wanted, but they also had a
secret, and their greatest fear was that somebody would discover
it. They didn't think they could bear it if anyone found out about
the Potters. Mrs. Potter was Mrs. Dursley's sister, but they hadn't
met for several years; in fact, Mrs. Dursley pretended she didn't
have a sister, because her sister and her good-for-nothing husband
were as unDursleyish as it was possible to be. The Dursleys shuddered
to think what the neighbors would say if the Potters arrived in the
street. The Dursleys knew that the Potters had a small son, too,
but they had never even seen him. This boy was another good reason
for keeping the Potters away; they didn't want Dudley mixing with
a child like that.
When Mr. and Mrs. Dursley woke up on the dull, gray Tuesday
our story starts, there was nothing about the cloudy sky outside to
suggest that strange and mysterious things would soon be happening
all over the country. Mr. Dursley hummed as he picked out his most
boring tie for work, and Mrs. Dursley gossiped away happily as she
wrestled a screaming Dudley into his high chair.
None of them noticed a large, tawny owl flutter past the window.
At half past eight, Mr. Dursley picked up his briefcase, pecked
Mrs. Dursley on the cheek, and tried to kiss Dudley good-bye but
missed, because Dudley was now having a tantrum and throwing his
cereal at the walls. "Little tyke," chortled Mr. Dursley as he left
the house. He got into his car and backed out of number four's drive.
It was on the corner of the street that he noticed the first
sign of something peculiar -- a cat reading a map. For a second,
Mr. Dursley didn't realize what he had seen -- then he jerked his
head around to look again. There was a tabby cat standing on the
corner of Privet Drive, but there wasn't a map in sight. What
could he have been thinking of? It must have been a trick of
the light. Mr. Dursley blinked and stared at the cat. It stared
back. As Mr. Dursley drove around the corner and up the road, he
watched the cat in his mirror. It was now reading the sign that
said Privet Drive -- no, looking at the sign; cats couldn't read
maps or signs. Mr. Dursley gave himself a little shake and put the
cat out of his mind. As he drove toward town he thought of nothing
except a large order of drills he was hoping to get that day.
But on the edge of town, drills were driven out of his mind
by something else. As he sat in the usual morning traffic jam, he
couldn't help noticing that there seemed to be a lot of strangely
dressed people about. People in cloaks. Mr. Dursley couldn't bear
people who dressed in funny clothes -- the getups you saw on young
people! He supposed this was some stupid new fashion. He drummed his
fingers on the steering wheel and his eyes fell on a huddle of these
weirdos standing quite close by. They were whispering excitedly
together. Mr. Dursley was enraged to see that a couple of them
weren't young at all; why, that man had to be older than he was,
and wearing an emerald-green cloak! The nerve of him! But then it
struck Mr. Dursley that this was probably some silly stunt -- these
people were obviously collecting for something... yes, that would
be it. The traffic moved on and a few minutes later, Mr. Dursley
arrived in the Grunnings parking lot, his mind back on drills.
Mr. Dursley always sat with his back to the window in his office
on the ninth floor. If he hadn't, he might have found it harder to
concentrate on drills that morning. He didn't see the owls swoop ing
past in broad daylight, though people down in the street did; they
pointed and gazed open- mouthed as owl after owl sped overhead. Most
of them had never seen an owl even at nighttime. Mr. Dursley,
however, had a perfectly normal, owl-free morning. He yelled at
five different people. He made several important telephone calls
and shouted a bit more. He was in a very good mood until lunchtime,
when he thought he'd stretch his legs and walk across the road to
buy himself a bun from the bakery.
He'd forgotten all about the people in cloaks until he passed
a group of them next to the baker's. He eyed them angrily as he
passed. He didn't know why, but they made him uneasy. This bunch were
whispering excitedly, too, and he couldn't see a single collecting
tin. It was on his way back past them, clutching a large doughnut
in a bag, that he caught a few words of what they were saying.
"The Potters, that's right, that's what I heard yes, their
son, Harry"
Mr. Dursley stopped dead. Fear flooded him. He looked back
at the whisperers as if he wanted to say something to them, but
thought better of it.
He dashed back across the road, hurried up to his office,
snapped at his secretary not to disturb him, seized his telephone,
and had almost finished dialing his home number when he changed
his mind. He put the receiver back down and stroked his mustache,
thinking... no, he was being stupid. Potter wasn't such an unusual
name. He was sure there were lots of people called Potter who had a
son called Harry. Come to think of it, he wasn't even sure his nephew
was called Harry. He'd never even seen the boy. It might have been
Harvey. Or Harold. There was no point in worrying Mrs. Dursley;
she always got so upset at any mention of her sister. He didn't
blame her -- if he'd had a sister like that... but all the same,
those people in cloaks...
He found it a lot harder to concentrate on drills that afternoon
and when he left the building at five o'clock, he was still so
worried that he walked straight into someone just outside the door.
"Sorry," he grunted, as the tiny old man stumbled and almost
fell. It was a few seconds before Mr. Dursley realized that the man
was wearing a violet cloak. He didn't seem at all upset at being
almost knocked to the ground. On the contrary, his face split into
a wide smile and he said in a squeaky voice that made passersby
stare, "Don't be sorry, my dear sir, for nothing could upset me
today! Rejoice, for You-Know-Who has gone at last! Even Muggles
like yourself should be celebrating, this happy, happy day!"
And the old man hugged Mr. Dursley around the middle and
walked off.
Mr. Dursley stood rooted to the spot. He had been hugged by
a complete stranger. He also thought he had been called a Muggle,
whatever that was. He was rattled. He hurried to his car and set
off for home, hoping he was imagining things, which he had never
hoped before, because he didn't approve of imagination.
As he pulled into the driveway of number four, the first thing
he saw -- and it didn't improve his mood -- was the tabby cat he'd
spotted that morning. It was now sitting on his garden wall. He was
sure it was the same one; it had the same markings around its eyes.
"Shoo!" said Mr. Dursley loudly. The cat didn't move. It just
gave him a stern look. Was this normal cat behavior? Mr. Dursley
wondered. Trying to pull himself together, he let himself into the
house. He was still determined not to mention anything to his wife.
Mrs. Dursley had had a nice, normal day. She told him over
dinner all about Mrs. Next Door's problems with her daughter and
how Dudley had learned a new word ("Won't!"). Mr. Dursley tried
to act normally. When Dudley had been put to bed, he went into the
living room in time to catch the last report on the evening news:
"And finally, bird-watchers everywhere have reported that the
nation's owls have been behaving very unusually today. Although
owls normally hunt at night and are hardly ever seen in daylight,
there have been hundreds of sightings of these birds flying in every
direction since sunrise. Experts are unable to explain why the owls
have suddenly changed their sleeping pattern." The newscaster allowed
himself a grin. "Most mysterious. And now, over to Jim McGuffin
with the weather. Going to be any more showers of owls tonight, Jim?"
"Well, Ted," said the weatherman, "I don't know about that, but
it's not only the owls that have been acting oddly today. Viewers
as far apart as Kent, Yorkshire, and Dundee have been phoning in to
tell me that instead of the rain I promised yesterday, they've had
a downpour of shooting stars! Perhaps people have been celebrating
Bonfire Night early -- it's not until next week, folks! But I can
promise a wet night tonight."
Mr. Dursley sat frozen in his armchair. Shooting stars all over
Britain? Owls flying by daylight? Mysterious people in cloaks all
over the place? And a whisper, a whisper about the Potters...
Mrs. Dursley came into the living room carrying two cups of
tea. It was no good. He'd have to say something to her. He cleared
his throat nervously. "Er -- Petunia, dear -- you haven't heard
from your sister lately, have you?"
As he had expected, Mrs. Dursley looked shocked and angry. After
all, they normally pretended she didn't have a sister.
"No," she said sharply. "Why?"
"Funny stuff on the news," Mr. Dursley mumbled. "Owls... shooting
stars... and there were a lot of funny-looking people in town
today..."
"So?" snapped Mrs. Dursley.
"Well, I just thought... maybe... it was something to do
with... you know... her crowd."
Mrs. Dursley sipped her tea through pursed lips. Mr. Dursley
wondered whether he dared tell her he'd heard the name "Potter." He
decided he didn't dare. Instead he said, as casually as he could,
"Their son -- he'd be about Dudley's age now, wouldn't he?"
"I suppose so," said Mrs. Dursley stiffly.
"What's his name again? Howard, isn't it?"
"Harry. Nasty, common name, if you ask me."
"Oh, yes," said Mr. Dursley, his heart sinking horribly. "Yes,
I quite agree."
He didn't say another word on the subject as they went upstairs
to bed. While Mrs. Dursley was in the bathroom, Mr. Dursley crept
to the bedroom window and peered down into the front garden. The
cat was still there. It was staring down Privet Drive as though it
were waiting for something.
Was he imagining things? Could all this have anything to do with
the Potters? If it did... if it got out that they were related to
a pair of -- well, he didn't think he could bear it.
The Dursleys got into bed. Mrs. Dursley fell asleep quickly
but Mr. Dursley lay awake, turning it all over in his mind. His
last, comforting thought before he fell asleep was that even if the
Potters were involved, there was no reason for them to come near him
and Mrs. Dursley. The Potters knew very well what he and Petunia
thought about them and their kind.... He couldn't see how he and
Petunia could get mixed up in anything that might be going on --
he yawned and turned over -- it couldn't affect them....
How very wrong he was.
Mr. Dursley might have been drifting into an uneasy sleep, but
the cat on the wall outside was showing no sign of sleepiness. It was
sitting as still as a statue, its eyes fixed unblinkingly on the far
corner of Privet Drive. It didn't so much as quiver when a car door
slammed on the next street, nor when two owls swooped overhead. In
fact, it was nearly midnight before the cat moved at all.
A man appeared on the corner the cat had been watching, appeared
so suddenly and silently you'd have thought he'd just popped out
of the ground. The cat's tail twitched and its eyes narrowed.
Nothing like this man had ever been seen on Privet Drive. He
was tall, thin, and very old, judging by the silver of his hair
and beard, which were both long enough to tuck into his belt. He
was wearing long robes, a purple cloak that swept the ground,
and high-heeled, buckled boots. His blue eyes were light, bright,
and sparkling behind half-moon spectacles and his nose was very
long and crooked, as though it had been broken at least twice. This
man's name was Albus Dumbledore.
Albus Dumbledore didn't seem to realize that he had just
arrived in a street where everything from his name to his boots
was unwelcome. He was busy rummaging in his cloak, looking for
something. But he did seem to realize he was being watched, because
he looked up suddenly at the cat, which was still staring at him from
the other end of the street. For some reason, the sight of the cat
seemed to amuse him. He chuckled and muttered, "I should have known."
He found what he was looking for in his inside pocket. It seemed
to be a silver cigarette lighter. He flicked it open, held it up
in the air, and clicked it. The nearest street lamp went out with
a little pop. He clicked it again -- the next lamp flickered into
darkness. Twelve times he clicked the Put-Outer, until the only
lights left on the whole street were two tiny pinpricks in the
distance, which were the eyes of the cat watching him. If anyone
looked out of their window now, even beady-eyed Mrs. Dursley,
they wouldn't be able to see anything that was happening down on
the pavement. Dumbledore slipped the Put-Outer back inside his
cloak and set off down the street toward number four, where he sat
down on the wall next to the cat. He didn't look at it, but after
a moment he spoke to it.
"Fancy seeing you here, Professor McGonagall."
He turned to smile at the tabby, but it had gone. Instead he
was smiling at a rather severe-looking woman who was wearing square
glasses exactly the shape of the markings the cat had had around
its eyes. She, too, was wearing a cloak, an emerald one. Her black
hair was drawn into a tight bun. She looked distinctly ruffled.
"How did you know it was me?" she asked.
"My dear Professor, I 've never seen a cat sit so stiffly."
"You'd be stiff if you'd been sitting on a brick wall all day,"
said Professor McGonagall.
"All day? When you could have been celebrating? I must have
passed a dozen feasts and parties on my way here."
Professor McGonagall sniffed angrily.
"Oh yes, everyone's celebrating, all right," she said
impatiently. "You'd think they'd be a bit more careful, but
no -- even the Muggles have noticed something's going on. It
was on their news." She jerked her head back at the Dursleys'
dark living-room window. "I heard it. Flocks of owls... shooting
stars.... Well, they're not completely stupid. They were bound to
notice something. Shooting stars down in Kent -- I'll bet that was
Dedalus Diggle. He never had much sense."
"You can't blame them," said Dumbledore gently. "We've had
precious little to celebrate for eleven years."
"I know that," said Professor McGonagall irritably. "But that's
no reason to lose our heads. People are being downright careless,
out on the streets in broad daylight, not even dressed in Muggle
clothes, swapping rumors."
She threw a sharp, sideways glance at Dumbledore here, as though
hoping he was going to tell her something, but he didn't, so she
went on. "A fine thing it would be if, on the very day YouKnow-Who
seems to have disappeared at last, the Muggles found out about us
all. I suppose he really has gone, Dumbledore?"
"It certainly seems so," said Dumbledore. "We have much to be
thankful for. Would you care for a lemon drop?"
"A what?"
"A lemon drop. They're a kind of Muggle sweet I'm rather fond of"
"No, thank you," said Professor McGonagall coldly, as though
she didn't think this was the moment for lemon drops. "As I say,
even if You-Know-Who has gone -"
"My dear Professor, surely a sensible person like yourself can
call him by his name? All this 'You- Know-Who' nonsense -- for eleven
years I have been trying to persuade people to call him by his proper
name: Voldemort." Professor McGonagall flinched, but Dumbledore,
who was unsticking two lemon drops, seemed not to notice. "It all
gets so confusing if we keep saying 'You-Know-Who.' I have never
seen any reason to be frightened of saying Voldemort's name.
"I know you haven 't, said Professor McGonagall, sounding
half exasperated, half admiring. "But you're different. Everyone
knows you're the only one You-Know- oh, all right, Voldemort,
was frightened of."
"You flatter me," said Dumbledore calmly. "Voldemort had powers
I will never have."
"Only because you're too -- well -- noble to use them."
"It's lucky it's dark. I haven't blushed so much since Madam
Pomfrey told me she liked my new earmuffs."
Professor McGonagall shot a sharp look at Dumbledore and said,
"The owls are nothing next to the rumors that are flying around. You
know what everyone's saying? About why he's disappeared? About what
finally stopped him?"
It seemed that Professor McGonagall had reached the point she
was most anxious to discuss, the real reason she had been waiting on
a cold, hard wall all day, for neither as a cat nor as a woman had
she fixed Dumbledore with such a piercing stare as she did now. It
was plain that whatever "everyone" was saying, she was not going
to believe it until Dumbledore told her it was true. Dumbledore,
however, was choosing another lemon drop and did not answer.
"What they're saying," she pressed on, "is that last night
Voldemort turned up in Godric's Hollow. He went to find the
Potters. The rumor is that Lily and James Potter are -- are --
that they're -- dead. "
Dumbledore bowed his head. Professor McGonagall gasped.
"Lily and James... I can't believe it... I didn't want to
believe it... Oh, Albus..."
Dumbledore reached out and patted her on the shoulder. "I
know... I know..." he said heavily.
Professor McGonagall's voice trembled as she went on. "That's
not all. They're saying he tried to kill the Potter's son, Harry. But
-- he couldn't. He couldn't kill that little boy. No one knows why,
or how, but they're saying that when he couldn't kill Harry Potter,
Voldemort's power somehow broke -- and that's why he's gone.
Dumbledore nodded glumly.
"It's -- it's true?" faltered Professor McGonagall. "After all
he's done... all the people he's killed... he couldn't kill a little
boy? It's just astounding... of all the things to stop him... but
how in the name of heaven did Harry survive?"
"We can only guess," said Dumbledore. "We may never know."
Professor McGonagall pulled out a lace handkerchief and dabbed
at her eyes beneath her spectacles. Dumbledore gave a great sniff
as he took a golden watch from his pocket and examined it. It was a
very odd watch. It had twelve hands but no numbers; instead, little
planets were moving around the edge. It must have made sense to
Dumbledore, though, because he put it back in his pocket and said,
"Hagrid's late. I suppose it was he who told you I'd be here,
by the way?"
"Yes," said Professor McGonagall. "And I don't suppose you're
going to tell me why you're here, of all places?"
"I've come to bring Harry to his aunt and uncle. They're the
only family he has left now."
"You don't mean -- you can't mean the people who live
here?" cried Professor McGonagall, jumping to her feet and pointing
at number four. "Dumbledore -- you can't. I've been watching them
all day. You couldn't find two people who are less like us. And
they've got this son -- I saw him kicking his mother all the way up
the street, screaming for sweets. Harry Potter come and live here!"
"It's the best place for him," said Dumbledore firmly. "His
aunt and uncle will be able to explain everything to him when he's
older. I've written them a letter."
"A letter?" repeated Professor McGonagall faintly, sitting back
down on the wall. "Really, Dumbledore, you think you can explain all
this in a letter? These people will never understand him! He'll be
famous -- a legend -- I wouldn't be surprised if today was known
as Harry Potter day in the future -- there will be books written
about Harry -- every child in our world will know his name!"
"Exactly," said Dumbledore, looking very seriously over the
top of his half-moon glasses. "It would be enough to turn any boy's
head. Famous before he can walk and talk! Famous for something he
won't even remember! CarA you see how much better off he'll be,
growing up away from all that until he's ready to take it?"
Professor McGonagall opened her mouth, changed her mind,
swallowed, and then said, "Yes -- yes, you're right, of course. But
how is the boy getting here, Dumbledore?" She eyed his cloak suddenly
as though she thought he might be hiding Harry underneath it.
"Hagrid's bringing him."
"You think it -- wise -- to trust Hagrid with something as
important as this?"
I would trust Hagrid with my life," said Dumbledore.
"I'm not saying his heart isn't in the right place," said
Professor McGonagall grudgingly, "but you can't pretend he's not
careless. He does tend to -- what was that?"
A low rumbling sound had broken the silence around them. It grew
steadily louder as they looked up and down the street for some sign
of a headlight; it swelled to a roar as they both looked up at the
sky -- and a huge motorcycle fell out of the air and landed on the
road in front of them.
If the motorcycle was huge, it was nothing to the man sitting
astride it. He was almost twice as tall as a normal man and at
least five times as wide. He looked simply too big to be allowed,
and so wild - long tangles of bushy black hair and beard hid most of
his face, he had hands the size of trash can lids, and his feet in
their leather boots were like baby dolphins. In his vast, muscular
arms he was holding a bundle of blankets.
"Hagrid," said Dumbledore, sounding relieved. "At last. And
where did you get that motorcycle?"
"Borrowed it, Professor Dumbledore, sit," said the giant,
climbing carefully off the motorcycle as he spoke. "Young Sirius
Black lent it to me. I've got him, sir."
"No problems, were there?"
"No, sir -- house was almost destroyed, but I got him out all
right before the Muggles started swarmin' around. He fell asleep
as we was flyin' over Bristol."
Dumbledore and Professor McGonagall bent forward over the bundle
of blankets. Inside, just visible, was a baby boy, fast asleep. Under
a tuft of jet-black hair over his forehead they could see a curiously
shaped cut, like a bolt of lightning.
"Is that where -?" whispered Professor McGonagall.
"Yes," said Dumbledore. "He'll have that scar forever."
"Couldn't you do something about it, Dumbledore?"
"Even if I could, I wouldn't. Scars can come in handy. I have
one myself above my left knee that is a perfect map of the London
Underground. Well -- give him here, Hagrid -- we'd better get this
over with."
Dumbledore took Harry in his arms and turned toward the Dursleys'
house.
"Could I -- could I say good-bye to him, sir?" asked Hagrid. He
bent his great, shaggy head over Harry and gave him what must have
been a very scratchy, whiskery kiss. Then, suddenly, Hagrid let
out a howl like a wounded dog.
"Shhh!" hissed Professor McGonagall, "you'll wake the Muggles!"
"S-s-sorry," sobbed Hagrid, taking out a large, spotted
handkerchief and burying his face in it. "But I c-c-can't stand it
-- Lily an' James dead -- an' poor little Harry off ter live with
Muggles -"
"Yes, yes, it's all very sad, but get a grip on yourself, Hagrid,
or we'll be found," Professor McGonagall whispered, patting Hagrid
gingerly on the arm as Dumbledore stepped over the low garden wall
and walked to the front door. He laid Harry gently on the doorstep,
took a letter out of his cloak, tucked it inside Harry's blankets,
and then came back to the other two. For a full minute the three of
them stood and looked at the little bundle; Hagrid's shoulders shook,
Professor McGonagall blinked furiously, and the twinkling light
that usually shone from Dumbledore's eyes seemed to have gone out.
"Well," said Dumbledore finally, "that's that. We've no business
staying here. We may as well go and join the celebrations."
"Yeah," said Hagrid in a very muffled voice, "I'll be takin'
Sirius his bike back. G'night, Professor McGonagall -- Professor
Dumbledore, sir."
Wiping his streaming eyes on his jacket sleeve, Hagrid swung
himself onto the motorcycle and kicked the engine into life; with
a roar it rose into the air and off into the night.
"I shall see you soon, I expect, Professor McGonagall," said
Dumbledore, nodding to her. Professor McGonagall blew her nose
in reply.
Dumbledore turned and walked back down the street. On the corner
he stopped and took out the silver Put-Outer. He clicked it once,
and twelve balls of light sped back to their street lamps so that
Privet Drive glowed suddenly orange and he could make out a tabby
cat slinking around the corner at the other end of the street. He
could just see the bundle of blankets on the step of number four.
"Good luck, Harry," he murmured. He turned on his heel and with
a swish of his cloak, he was gone.
A breeze ruffled the neat hedges of Privet Drive, which lay
silent and tidy under the inky sky, the very last place you would
expect astonishing things to happen. Harry Potter rolled over
inside his blankets without waking up. One small hand closed on
the letter beside him and he slept on, not knowing he was special,
not knowing he was famous, not knowing he would be woken in a few
hours' time by Mrs. Dursley's scream as she opened the front door
to put out the milk bottles, nor that he would spend the next few
weeks being prodded and pinched by his cousin Dudley... He couldn't
know that at this very moment, people meeting in secret all over the
country were holding up their glasses and saying in hushed voices:
"To Harry Potter -- the boy who lived!"
CHAPTER TWO
THE VANISHING GLASS
Nearly ten years had passed since the Dursleys had woken up to
find their nephew on the front step, but Privet Drive had hardly
changed at all. The sun rose on the same tidy front gardens and
lit up the brass number four on the Dursleys' front door; it crept
into their living room, which was almost exactly the same as it
had been on the night when Mr. Dursley had seen that fateful news
report about the owls. Only the photographs on the mantelpiece really
showed how much time had passed. Ten years ago, there had been lots
of pictures of what looked like a large pink beach ball wearing
different-colored bonnets -- but Dudley Dursley was no longer a
baby, and now the photographs showed a large blond boy riding his
first bicycle, on a carousel at the fair, playing a computer game
with his father, being hugged and kissed by his mother. The room
held no sign at all that another boy lived in the house, too.
Yet Harry Potter was still there, asleep at the moment, but not
for long. His Aunt Petunia was awake and it was her shrill voice
that made the first noise of the day.
"Up! Get up! Now!"
Harry woke with a start. His aunt rapped on the door again.
"Up!" she screeched. Harry heard her walking toward the kitchen
and then the sound of the frying pan being put on the stove. He
rolled onto his back and tried to remember the dream he had been
having. It had been a good one. There had been a flying motorcycle
in it. He had a funny feeling he'd had the same dream before.
His aunt was back outside the door.
"Are you up yet?" she demanded.
"Nearly," said Harry.
"Well, get a move on, I want you to look after the bacon. And
don't you dare let it burn, I want everything perfect on Duddy's
birthday."
Harry groaned.
"What did you say?" his aunt snapped through the door.
"Nothing, nothing..."
Dudley's birthday -- how could he have forgotten? Harry got
slowly out of bed and started looking for socks. He found a pair
under his bed and, after pulling a spider off one of them, put them
on. Harry was used to spiders, because the cupboard under the stairs
was full of them, and that was where he slept.
When he was dressed he went down the hall into the kitchen. The
table was almost hidden beneath all Dudley's birthday presents. It
looked as though Dudley had gotten the new computer he wanted,
not to mention the second television and the racing bike. Exactly
why Dudley wanted a racing bike was a mystery to Harry, as Dudley
was very fat and hated exercise -- unless of course it involved
punching somebody. Dudley's favorite punching bag was Harry, but he
couldn't often catch him. Harry didn't look it, but he was very fast.
Perhaps it had something to do with living in a dark cupboard,
but Harry had always been small and skinny for his age. He looked
even smaller and skinnier than he really was because all he had to
wear were old clothes of Dudley's, and Dudley was about four times
bigger than he was. Harry had a thin face, knobbly knees, black hair,
and bright green eyes. He wore round glasses held together with a
lot of Scotch tape because of all the times Dudley had punched him
on the nose. The only thing Harry liked about his own appearance
was a very thin scar on his forehead that was shaped like a bolt
of lightning. He had had it as long as he could remember, and the
first question he could ever remember asking his Aunt Petunia was
how he had gotten it.
"In the car crash when your parents died," she had said. "And
don't ask questions."
Don't ask questions -- that was the first rule for a quiet life
with the Dursleys.
Uncle Vernon entered the kitchen as Harry was turning over
the bacon.
"Comb your hair!" he barked, by way of a morning greeting.
About once a week, Uncle Vernon looked over the top of his
newspaper and shouted that Harry needed a haircut. Harry must have
had more haircuts than the rest of the boys in his class put
together, but it made no difference, his hair simply grew that
way -- all over the place.
Harry was frying eggs by the time Dudley arrived in the kitchen
with his mother. Dudley looked a lot like Uncle Vernon. He had a
large pink face, not much neck, small, watery blue eyes, and thick
blond hair that lay smoothly on his thick, fat head. Aunt Petunia
often said that Dudley looked like a baby angel -- Harry often said
that Dudley looked like a pig in a wig.
Harry put the plates of egg and bacon on the table, which was
difficult as there wasn't much room. Dudley, meanwhile, was counting
his presents. His face fell.
"Thirty-six," he said, looking up at his mother and
father. "That's two less than last year."
"Darling, you haven't counted Auntie Marge's present, see,
it's here under this big one from Mommy and Daddy."
"All right, thirty-seven then," said Dudley, going red in the
face. Harry, who could see a huge Dudley tantrum coming on, began
wolfing down his bacon as fast as possible in case Dudley turned
the table over.
Aunt Petunia obviously scented danger, too, because she said
quickly, "And we'll buy you another two presents while we're out
today. How's that, popkin? Two more presents. Is that all right''
Dudley thought for a moment. It looked like hard work. Finally
he said slowly, "So I'll have thirty ... thirty..."
"Thirty-nine, sweetums," said Aunt Petunia.
"Oh." Dudley sat down heavily and grabbed the nearest
parcel. "All right then."
Uncle Vernon chuckled. "Little tyke wants his money's worth,
just like his father. 'Atta boy, Dudley!" He ruffled Dudley's hair.
At that moment the telephone rang and Aunt Petunia went to
answer it while Harry and Uncle Vernon watched Dudley unwrap the
racing bike, a video camera, a remote control airplane, sixteen
new computer games, and a VCR. He was ripping the paper off a gold
wristwatch when Aunt Petunia came back from the telephone looking
both angry and worried.
"Bad news, Vernon," she said. "Mrs. Figg's broken her leg. She
can't take him." She jerked her head in Harry's direction.
Dudley's mouth fell open in horror, but Harry's heart gave a
leap. Every year on Dudley's birthday, his parents took him and a
friend out for the day, to adventure parks, hamburger restaurants,
or the movies. Every year, Harry was left behind with Mrs. Figg, a
mad old lady who lived two streets away. Harry hated it there. The
whole house smelled of cabbage and Mrs. Figg made him look at
photographs of all the cats she'd ever owned.
"Now what?" said Aunt Petunia, looking furiously at Harry as
though he'd planned this. Harry knew he ought to feel sorry that
Mrs. Figg had broken her leg, but it wasn't easy when he reminded
himself it would be a whole year before he had to look at Tibbles,
Snowy, Mr. Paws, and Tufty again.
"We could phone Marge," Uncle Vernon suggested.
"Don't be silly, Vernon, she hates the boy."
The Dursleys often spoke about Harry like this, as though he
wasn't there -- or rather, as though he was something very nasty
that couldn't understand them, like a slug.
"What about what's-her-name, your friend -- Yvonne?"
"On vacation in Majorca," snapped Aunt Petunia.
"You could just leave me here," Harry put in hopefully (he'd be
able to watch what he wanted on television for a change and maybe
even have a go on Dudley's computer).
Aunt Petunia looked as though she'd just swallowed a lemon.
"And come back and find the house in ruins?" she snarled.
"I won't blow up the house," said Harry, but they weren't
listening.
"I suppose we could take him to the zoo," said Aunt Petunia
slowly, "... and leave him in the car...."
"That car's new, he's not sitting in it alone...."
Dudley began to cry loudly. In fact, he wasn't really crying --
it had been years since he'd really cried -- but he knew that if he
screwed up his face and wailed, his mother would give him anything
he wanted.
"Dinky Duddydums, don't cry, Mummy won't let him spoil your
special day!" she cried, flinging her arms around him.
"I... don't... want... him... t-t-to come!" Dudley yelled
between huge, pretend sobs. "He always sp- spoils everything!" He
shot Harry a nasty grin through the gap in his mother's arms.
Just then, the doorbell rang -- "Oh, good Lord, they're
here!" said Aunt Petunia frantically -- and a moment later, Dudley's
best friend, Piers Polkiss, walked in with his mother. Piers was
a scrawny boy with a face like a rat. He was usually the one who
held people's arms behind their backs while Dudley hit them. Dudley
stopped pretending to cry at once.
Half an hour later, Harry, who couldn't believe his luck, was
sitting in the back of the Dursleys' car with Piers and Dudley,
on the way to the zoo for the first time in his life. His aunt and
uncle hadn't been able to think of anything else to do with him,
but before they'd left, Uncle Vernon had taken Harry aside.
"I'm warning you," he had said, putting his large purple face
right up close to Harry's, "I'm warning you now, boy -- any funny
business, anything at all -- and you'll be in that cupboard from
now until Christmas."
"I'm not going to do anything," said Harry, "honestly..
But Uncle Vernon didn't believe him. No one ever did.
The problem was, strange things often happened around Harry and
it was just no good telling the Dursleys he didn't make them happen.
Once, Aunt Petunia, tired of Harry coming back from the barbers
looking as though he hadn't been at all, had taken a pair of kitchen
scissors and cut his hair so short he was almost bald except for
his bangs, which she left "to hide that horrible scar." Dudley had
laughed himself silly at Harry, who spent a sleepless night imagining
school the next day, where he was already laughed at for his baggy
clothes and taped glasses. Next morning, however, he had gotten
up to find his hair exactly as it had been before Aunt Petunia had
sheared it off He had been given a week in his cupboard for this,
even though he had tried to explain that he couldn't explain how
it had grown back so quickly.
Another time, Aunt Petunia had been trying to force him into a
revolting old sweater of Dudley's (brown with orange puff balls) --
The harder she tried to pull it over his head, the smaller it seemed
to become, until finally it might have fitted a hand puppet, but
certainly wouldn't fit Harry. Aunt Petunia had decided it must have
shrunk in the wash and, to his great relief, Harry wasn't punished.
On the other hand, he'd gotten into terrible trouble for being
found on the roof of the school kitchens. Dudley's gang had been
chasing him as usual when, as much to Harry's surprise as anyone
else's, there he was sitting on the chimney. The Dursleys had
received a very angry letter from Harry's headmistress telling them
Harry had been climbing school buildings. But all he'd tried to
do (as he shouted at Uncle Vernon through the locked door of his
cupboard) was jump behind the big trash cans outside the kitchen
doors. Harry supposed that the wind must have caught him in mid-
jump.
But today, nothing was going to go wrong. It was even worth being
with Dudley and Piers to be spending the day somewhere that wasn't
school, his cupboard, or Mrs. Figg's cabbage-smelling living room.
While he drove, Uncle Vernon complained to Aunt Petunia. He liked
to complain about things: people at work, Harry, the council, Harry,
the bank, and Harry were just a few of his favorite subjects. This
morning, it was motorcycles.
"... roaring along like maniacs, the young hoodlums," he said,
as a motorcycle overtook them.
I had a dream about a motorcycle," said Harry, remembering
suddenly. "It was flying."
Uncle Vernon nearly crashed into the car in front. He turned
right around in his seat and yelled at Harry, his face like a
gigantic beet with a mustache: "MOTORCYCLES DON'T FLY!"
Dudley and Piers sniggered.
I know they don't," said Harry. "It was only a dream."
But he wished he hadn't said anything. If there was one thing
the Dursleys hated even more than his asking questions, it was
his talking about anything acting in a way it shouldn't, no matter
if it was in a dream or even a cartoon -- they seemed to think he
might get dangerous ideas.
It was a very sunny Saturday and the zoo was crowded with
families. The Dursleys bought Dudley and Piers large chocolate
ice creams at the entrance and then, because the smiling lady in
the van had asked Harry what he wanted before they could hurry him
away, they bought him a cheap lemon ice pop. It wasn't bad, either,
Harry thought, licking it as they watched a gorilla scratching its
head who looked remarkably like Dudley, except that it wasn't blond.
Harry had the best morning he'd had in a long time. He was
careful to walk a little way apart from the Dursleys so that
Dudley and Piers, who were starting to get bored with the animals
by lunchtime, wouldn't fall back on their favorite hobby of hitting
him. They ate in the zoo restaurant, and when Dudley had a tantrum
because his knickerbocker glory didn't have enough ice cream on top,
Uncle Vernon bought him another one and Harry was allowed to finish
the first.
Harry felt, afterward, that he should have known it was all
too good to last.
After lunch they went to the reptile house. It was cool and dark
in there, with lit windows all along the walls. Behind the glass, all
sorts of lizards and snakes were crawling and slithering over bits
of wood and stone. Dudley and Piers wanted to see huge, poisonous
cobras and thick, man-crushing pythons. Dudley quickly found the
largest snake in the place. It could have wrapped its body twice
around Uncle Vernon's car and crushed it into a trash can -- but at
the moment it didn't look in the mood. In fact, it was fast asleep.
Dudley stood with his nose pressed against the glass, staring
at the glistening brown coils.
"Make it move," he whined at his father. Uncle Vernon tapped
on the glass, but the snake didn't budge.
"Do it again," Dudley ordered. Uncle Vernon rapped the glass
smartly with his knuckles, but the snake just snoozed on.
"This is boring," Dudley moaned. He shuffled away.
Harry moved in front of the tank and looked intently at the
snake. He wouldn't have been surprised if it had died of boredom
itself -- no company except stupid people drumming their fingers
on the glass trying to disturb it all day long. It was worse than
having a cupboard as a bedroom, where the only visitor was Aunt
Petunia hammering on the door to wake you up; at least he got to
visit the rest of the house.
The snake suddenly opened its beady eyes. Slowly, very slowly,
it raised its head until its eyes were on a level with Harry's.
It winked.
Harry stared. Then he looked quickly around to see if anyone was
watching. They weren't. He looked back at the snake and winked, too.
The snake jerked its head toward Uncle Vernon and Dudley, then
raised its eyes to the ceiling. It gave Harry a look that said
quite plainly:
"I get that all the time.
"I know," Harry murmured through the glass, though he wasn't
sure the snake could hear him. "It must be really annoying."
The snake nodded vigorously.
"Where do you come from, anyway?" Harry asked.
The snake jabbed its tail at a little sign next to the
glass. Harry peered at it.
Boa Constrictor, Brazil.
"Was it nice there?"
The boa constrictor jabbed its tail at the sign again and
Harry read on: This specimen was bred in the zoo. "Oh, I see --
so you've never been to Brazil?"
As the snake shook its head, a deafening shout behind Harry
made both of them jump.
"DUDLEY! MR. DURSLEY! COME AND LOOK AT THIS SNAKE! YOU WON'T
BELIEVE WHAT IT'S DOING!"
Dudley came waddling toward them as fast as he could.
"Out of the way, you," he said, punching Harry in the
ribs. Caught by surprise, Harry fell hard on the concrete floor. What
came next happened so fast no one saw how it happened -- one second,
Piers and Dudley were leaning right up close to the glass, the next,
they had leapt back with howls of horror.
Harry sat up and gasped; the glass front of the boa constrictor's
tank had vanished. The great snake was uncoiling itself rapidly,
slithering out onto the floor. People throughout the reptile house
screamed and started running for the exits.
As the snake slid swiftly past him, Harry could have sworn a low,
hissing voice said, "Brazil, here I come.... Thanksss, amigo."
The keeper of the reptile house was in shock.
"But the glass," he kept saying, "where did the glass go?"
The zoo director himself made Aunt Petunia a cup of strong,
sweet tea while he apologized over and over again. Piers and
Dudley could only gibber. As far as Harry had seen, the snake
hadn't done anything except snap playfully at their heels as it
passed, but by the time they were all back in Uncle Vernon's car,
Dudley was telling them how it had nearly bitten off his leg, while
Piers was swearing it had tried to squeeze him to death. But worst
of all, for Harry at least, was Piers calming down enough to say,
"Harry was talking to it, weren't you, Harry?"
Uncle Vernon waited until Piers was safely out of the house
before starting on Harry. He was so angry he could hardly speak. He
managed to say, "Go -- cupboard -- stay -- no meals," before he
collapsed into a chair, and Aunt Petunia had to run and get him a
large brandy.
Harry lay in his dark cupboard much later, wishing he had a
watch. He didn't know what time it was and he couldn't be sure the
Dursleys were asleep yet. Until they were, he couldn't risk sneaking
to the kitchen for some food.
He'd lived with the Dursleys almost ten years, ten miserable
years, as long as he could remember, ever since he'd been a baby
and his parents had died in that car crash. He couldn't remember
being in the car when his parents had died. Sometimes, when he
strained his memory during long hours in his cupboard, he came up
with a strange vision: a blinding flash of green light and a burn-
ing pain on his forehead. This, he supposed, was the crash, though
he couldn't imagine where all the green light came from. He couldn't
remember his parents at all. His aunt and uncle never spoke about
them, and of course he was forbidden to ask questions. There were
no photographs of them in the house.
When he had been younger, Harry had dreamed and dreamed of some
unknown relation coming to take him away, but it had never happened;
the Dursleys were his only family. Yet sometimes he thought (or maybe
hoped) that strangers in the street seemed to know him. Very strange
strangers they were, too. A tiny man in a violet top hat had bowed
to him once while out shopping with Aunt Petunia and Dudley. After
asking Harry furiously if he knew the man, Aunt Petunia had rushed
them out of the shop without buying anything. A wild-looking old
woman dressed all in green had waved merrily at him once on a bus. A
bald man in a very long purple coat had actually shaken his hand in
the street the other day and then walked away without a word. The
weirdest thing about all these people was the way they seemed to
vanish the second Harry tried to get a closer look.
At school, Harry had no one. Everybody knew that Dudley's gang
hated that odd Harry Potter in his baggy old clothes and broken
glasses, and nobody liked to disagree with Dudley's gang.
CHAPTER THREE
THE LETTERS FROM NO ONE
The escape of the Brazilian boa constrictor earned Harry his
longest-ever punishment. By the time he was allowed out of his
cupboard again, the summer holidays had started and Dudley had
already broken his new video camera, crashed his remote control
airplane, and, first time out on his racing bike, knocked down old
Mrs. Figg as she crossed Privet Drive on her crutches.
Harry was glad school was over, but there was no escaping
Dudley's gang, who visited the house every single day. Piers, Dennis,
Malcolm, and Gordon were all big and stupid, but as Dudley was
the biggest and stupidest of the lot, he was the leader. The rest
of them were all quite happy to join in Dudley's favorite sport:
Harry Hunting.
This was why Harry spent as much time as possible out of the
house, wandering around and thinking about the end of the holidays,
where he could see a tiny ray of hope. When September came he would
be going off to secondary school and, for the first time in his
life, he wouldn't be with Dudley. Dudley had been accepted at Uncle
Vernon's old private school, Smeltings. Piers Polkiss was going
there too. Harry, on the other hand, was going to Stonewall High,
the local public school. Dudley thought this was very funny.
"They stuff people's heads down the toilet the first day at
Stonewall," he told Harry. "Want to come upstairs and practice?"
"No, thanks," said Harry. "The poor toilet's never had anything
as horrible as your head down it -- it might be sick." Then he ran,
before Dudley could work out what he'd said.
One day in July, Aunt Petunia took Dudley to London to buy his
Smeltings uniform, leaving Harry at Mrs. Figg's. Mrs. Figg wasn
't as bad as usual. It turned out she'd broken her leg tripping
over one of her cats, and she didn't seem quite as fond of them
as before. She let Harry watch television and gave him a bit of
chocolate cake that tasted as though she'd had it for several years.
That evening, Dudley paraded around the living room for the
family in his brand-new uniform. Smeltings' boys wore maroon
tailcoats, orange knickerbockers, and flat straw hats called
boaters. They also carried knobbly sticks, used for hitting each
other while the teachers weren't looking. This was supposed to be
good training for later life.
As he looked at Dudley in his new knickerbockers, Uncle Vernon
said gruffly that it was the proudest moment of his life. Aunt
Petunia burst into tears and said she couldn't believe it was her
Ickle Dudleykins, he looked so handsome and grown-up. Harry didn't
trust himself to speak. He thought two of his ribs might already
have cracked from trying not to laugh.
There was a horrible smell in the kitchen the next morning when
Harry went in for breakfast. It seemed to be coming from a large
metal tub in the sink. He went to have a look. The tub was full of
what looked like dirty rags swimming in gray water.
"What's this?" he asked Aunt Petunia. Her lips tightened as
they always did if he dared to ask a question.
"Your new school uniform," she said.
Harry looked in the bowl again.
"Oh," he said, "I didn't realize it had to be so wet."
"DotA be stupid," snapped Aunt Petunia. "I'm dyeing some of
Dudley's old things gray for you. It'll look just like everyone
else's when I've finished."
Harry seriously doubted this, but thought it best not to
argue. He sat down at the table and tried not to think about how
he was going to look on his first day at Stonewall High -- like he
was wearing bits of old elephant skin, probably.
Dudley and Uncle Vernon came in, both with wrinkled noses
because of the smell from Harry's new uniform. Uncle Vernon opened
his newspaper as usual and Dudley banged his Smelting stick, which
he carried everywhere, on the table.
They heard the click of the mail slot and flop of letters on
the doormat.
"Get the mail, Dudley," said Uncle Vernon from behind his paper.
"Make Harry get it."
"Get the mail, Harry."
"Make Dudley get it."
"Poke him with your Smelting stick, Dudley."
Harry dodged the Smelting stick and went to get the mail. Three
things lay on the doormat: a postcard from Uncle Vernon's sister
Marge, who was vacationing on the Isle of Wight, a brown envelope
that looked like a bill, and -- a letter for Harry.
Harry picked it up and stared at it, his heart twanging like a
giant elastic band. No one, ever, in his whole life, had written to
him. Who would? He had no friends, no other relatives -- he didn't
belong to the library, so he'd never even got rude notes asking for
books back. Yet here it was, a letter, addressed so plainly there
could be no mistake:
Mr. H. Potter
The Cupboard under the Stairs
4 Privet Drive
Little Whinging
Surrey
The envelope was thick and heavy, made of yellowish parchment,
and the address was written in emerald-green ink. There was no stamp.
Turning the envelope over, his hand trembling, Harry saw a
purple wax seal bearing a coat of arms; a lion, an eagle, a badger,
and a snake surrounding a large letter H.
"Hurry up, boy!" shouted Uncle Vernon from the kitchen. "What are
you doing, checking for letter bombs?" He chuckled at his own joke.
Harry went back to the kitchen, still staring at his letter. He
handed Uncle Vernon the bill and the postcard, sat down, and slowly
began to open the yellow envelope.
Uncle Vernon ripped open the bill, snorted in disgust, and
flipped over the postcard.
"Marge's ill," he informed Aunt Petunia. "Ate a funny whelk. --."
"Dad!" said Dudley suddenly. "Dad, Harry's got something!"
Harry was on the point of unfolding his letter, which was
written on the same heavy parchment as the envelope, when it was
jerked sharply out of his hand by Uncle Vernon.
"That's mine!" said Harry, trying to snatch it back.
"Who'd be writing to you?" sneered Uncle Vernon, shaking the
letter open with one hand and glancing at it. His face went from
red to green faster than a set of traffic lights. And it didn't
stop there. Within seconds it was the grayish white of old porridge.
"P-P-Petunia!" he gasped.
Dudley tried to grab the letter to read it, but Uncle Vernon
held it high out of his reach. Aunt Petunia took it curiously and
read the first line. For a moment it looked as though she might
faint. She clutched her throat and made a choking noise.
"Vernon! Oh my goodness -- Vernon!"
They stared at each other, seeming to have forgotten that
Harry and Dudley were still in the room. Dudley wasn't used to
being ignored. He gave his father a sharp tap on the head with his
Smelting stick.
"I want to read that letter," he said loudly. want to read it,"
said Harry furiously, "as it's mine."
"Get out, both of you," croaked Uncle Vernon, stuffing the
letter back inside its envelope.
Harry didn't move.
I WANT MY LETTER!" he shouted.
"Let me see it!" demanded Dudley.
"OUT!" roared Uncle Vernon, and he took both Harry and Dudley by
the scruffs of their necks and threw them into the hall, slamming the
kitchen door behind them. Harry and Dudley promptly had a furious
but silent fight over who would listen at the keyhole; Dudley won,
so Harry, his glasses dangling from one ear, lay flat on his stomach
to listen at the crack between door and floor.
"Vernon," Aunt Petunia was saying in a quivering voice, "look
at the address -- how could they possibly know where he sleeps? You
don't think they're watching the house?"
"Watching -- spying -- might be following us," muttered Uncle
Vernon wildly.
"But what should we do, Vernon? Should we write back? Tell them
we don't want --"
Harry could see Uncle Vernon's shiny black shoes pacing up and
down the kitchen.
"No," he said finally. "No, we'll ignore it. If they don't get
an answer... Yes, that's best... we won't do anything....
"But --"
"I'm not having one in the house, Petunia! Didn't we swear when
we took him in we'd stamp out that dangerous nonsense?"
That evening when he got back from work, Uncle Vernon did
something he'd never done before; he visited Harry in his cupboard.
"Where's my letter?" said Harry, the moment Uncle Vernon had
squeezed through the door. "Who's writing to me?"
"No one. it was addressed to you by mistake," said Uncle Vernon
shortly. "I have burned it."
"It was not a mistake," said Harry angrily, "it had my cupboard
on it."
"SILENCE!" yelled Uncle Vernon, and a couple of spiders fell
from the ceiling. He took a few deep breaths and then forced his
face into a smile, which looked quite painful.
"Er -- yes, Harry -- about this cupboard. Your aunt and I have
been thinking... you're really getting a bit big for it... we think
it might be nice if you moved into Dudley's second bedroom.
"Why?" said Harry.
"Don't ask questions!" snapped his uncle. "Take this stuff
upstairs, now."
The Dursleys' house had four bedrooms: one for Uncle Vernon
and Aunt Petunia, one for visitors (usually Uncle Vernon's sister,
Marge), one where Dudley slept, and one where Dudley kept all the
toys and things that wouldn't fit into his first bedroom. It only
took Harry one trip upstairs to move everything he owned from the
cupboard to this room. He sat down on the bed and stared around
him. Nearly everything in here was broken. The month-old video camera
was lying on top of a small, working tank Dudley had once driven over
the next door neighbor's dog; in the corner was Dudley's first-ever
television set, which he'd put his foot through when his favorite
program had been canceled; there was a large birdcage, which had
once held a parrot that Dudley had swapped at school for a real air
rifle, which was up on a shelf with the end all bent because Dudley
had sat on it. Other shelves were full of books. They were the only
things in the room that looked as though they'd never been touched.
From downstairs came the sound of Dudley bawling at his mother, I
don't want him in there... I need that room... make him get out...."
Harry sighed and stretched out on the bed. Yesterday he'd have
given anything to be up here. Today he'd rather be back in his
cupboard with that letter than up here without it.
Next morning at breakfast, everyone was rather quiet. Dudley was
in shock. He'd screamed, whacked his father with his Smelting stick,
been sick on purpose, kicked his mother, and thrown his tortoise
through the greenhouse roof, and he still didn't have his room
back. Harry was thinking about this time yesterday and bitterly
wishing he'd opened the letter in the hall. Uncle Vernon and Aunt
Petunia kept looking at each other darkly.
When the mail arrived, Uncle Vernon, who seemed to be trying to
be nice to Harry, made Dudley go and get it. They heard him banging
things with his Smelting stick all the way down the hall. Then he
shouted, "There's another one! 'Mr. H. Potter, The Smallest Bedroom,
4 Privet Drive --'"
With a strangled cry, Uncle Vernon leapt from his seat and
ran down the hall, Harry right behind him. Uncle Vernon had to
wrestle Dudley to the ground to get the letter from him, which
was made difficult by the fact that Harry had grabbed Uncle Vernon
around the neck from behind. After a minute of confused fighting,
in which everyone got hit a lot by the Smelting stick, Uncle Vernon
straightened up, gasping for breath, with Harry's letter clutched
in his hand.
"Go to your cupboard -- I mean, your bedroom," he wheezed at
Harry. "Dudley -- go -- just go."
Harry walked round and round his new room. Someone knew he had
moved out of his cupboard and they seemed to know he hadn't received
his first letter. Surely that meant they'd try again? And this time
he'd make sure they didn't fail. He had a plan.
The repaired alarm clock rang at six o'clock the next
morning. Harry turned it off quickly and dressed silently. He
mustn't wake the Dursleys. He stole downstairs without turning on
any of the lights.
He was going to wait for the postman on the corner of Privet
Drive and get the letters for number four first. His heart hammered
as he crept across the dark hall toward the front door --
Harry leapt into the air; he'd trodden on something big and
squashy on the doormat -- something alive!
Lights clicked on upstairs and to his horror Harry realized that
the big, squashy something had been his uncle's face. Uncle Vernon
had been lying at the foot of the front door in a sleeping bag,
clearly making sure that Harry didn't do exactly what he'd been
trying to do. He shouted at Harry for about half an hour and then
told him to go and make a cup of tea. Harry shuffled miserably
off into the kitchen and by the time he got back, the mail had
arrived, right into Uncle Vernon's lap. Harry could see three
letters addressed in green ink.
I want --" he began, but Uncle Vernon was tearing the letters
into pieces before his eyes. Uncle Vernon didnt go to work that
day. He stayed at home and nailed up the mail slot.
"See," he explained to Aunt Petunia through a mouthful of nails,
"if they can't deliver them they'll just give up."
"I'm not sure that'll work, Vernon."
"Oh, these people's minds work in strange ways, Petunia, they're
not like you and me," said Uncle Vernon, trying to knock in a nail
with the piece of fruitcake Aunt Petunia had just brought him.
On Friday, no less than twelve letters arrived for Harry. As
they couldn't go through the mail slot they had been pushed under
the door, slotted through the sides, and a few even forced through
the small window in the downstairs bathroom.
Uncle Vernon stayed at home again. After burning all the
letters, he got out a hammer and nails and boarded up the cracks
around the front and back doors so no one could go out. He hummed
"Tiptoe Through the Tulips" as he worked, and jumped at small noises.
On Saturday, things began to get out of hand. Twenty-four letters
to Harry found their way into the house, rolled up and hidden inside
each of the two dozen eggs that their very confused milkman had
handed Aunt Petunia through the living room window. While Uncle
Vernon made furious telephone calls to the post office and the
dairy trying to find someone to complain to, Aunt Petunia shredded
the letters in her food processor.
"Who on earth wants to talk to you this badly?" Dudley asked
Harry in amazement.
On Sunday morning, Uncle Vernon sat down at the breakfast table
looking tired and rather ill, but happy.
"No post on Sundays," he reminded them cheerfully as he spread
marmalade on his newspapers, "no damn letters today --"
Something came whizzing down the kitchen chimney as he spoke and
caught him sharply on the back of the head. Next moment, thirty or
forty letters came pelting out of the fireplace like bullets. The
Dursleys ducked, but Harry leapt into the air trying to catch one.
"Out! OUT!"
Uncle Vernon seized Harry around the waist and threw him into
the hall. When Aunt Petunia and Dudley had run out with their arms
over their faces, Uncle Vernon slammed the door shut. They could
hear the letters still streaming into the room, bouncing off the
walls and floor.
"That does it," said Uncle Vernon, trying to speak calmly but
pulling great tufts out of his mustache at the same time. I want you
all back here in five minutes ready to leave. We're going away. Just
pack some clothes. No arguments!"
He looked so dangerous with half his mustache missing that
no one dared argue. Ten minutes later they had wrenched their way
through the boarded-up doors and were in the car, speeding toward
the highway. Dudley was sniffling in the back seat; his father had
hit him round the head for holding them up while he tried to pack
his television, VCR, and computer in his sports bag.
They drove. And they drove. Even Aunt Petunia didn't dare ask
where they were going. Every now and then Uncle Vernon would take a
sharp turn and drive in the opposite direction for a while. "Shake'em
off... shake 'em off," he would mutter whenever he did this.
They didn't stop to eat or drink all day. By nightfall Dudley was
howling. He'd never had such a bad day in his life. He was hungry,
he'd missed five television programs he'd wanted to see, and he'd
never gone so long without blowing up an alien on his computer.
Uncle Vernon stopped at last outside a gloomy-looking hotel on
the outskirts of a big city. Dudley and Harry shared a room with
twin beds and damp, musty sheets. Dudley snored but Harry stayed
awake, sitting on the windowsill, staring down at the lights of
passing cars and wondering....
They ate stale cornflakes and cold tinned tomatoes on toast
for breakfast the next day. They had just finished when the owner
of the hotel came over to their table.
"'Scuse me, but is one of you Mr. H. Potter? Only I got about an
'undred of these at the front desk."
She held up a letter so they could read the green ink address:
Mr. H. Potter
Room 17
Railview Hotel
Cokeworth
Harry made a grab for the letter but Uncle Vernon knocked his
hand out of the way. The woman stared.
"I'll take them," said Uncle Vernon, standing up quickly and
following her from the dining room.
Wouldn't it be better just to go home, dear?" Aunt Petunia
suggested timidly, hours later, but Uncle Vernon didn't seem to
hear her. Exactly what he was looking for, none of them knew. He
drove them into the middle of a forest, got out, looked around,
shook his head, got back in the car, and off they went again. The
same thing happened in the middle of a plowed field, halfway across
a suspension bridge, and at the top of a multilevel parking garage.
"Daddy's gone mad, hasn't he?" Dudley asked Aunt Petunia dully
late that afternoon. Uncle Vernon had parked at the coast, locked
them all inside the car, and disappeared.
It started to rain. Great drops beat on the roof of the car. Dud
ley sniveled.
"It's Monday," he told his mother. "The Great Humberto's on
tonight. I want to stay somewhere with a television. "
Monday. This reminded Harry of something. If it was Monday --
and you could usually count on Dudley to know the days the week,
because of television -- then tomorrow, Tuesday, was Harry's eleventh
birthday. Of course, his birthdays were never exactly fun -- last
year, the Dursleys had given him a coat hanger and a pair of Uncle
Vernon's old socks. Still, you weren't eleven every day.
Uncle Vernon was back and he was smiling. He was also carrying
a long, thin package and didn't answer Aunt Petunia when she asked
what he'd bought.
"Found the perfect place!" he said. "Come on! Everyone out!"
It was very cold outside the car. Uncle Vernon was pointing
at what looked like a large rock way out at sea. Perched on top of
the rock was the most miserable little shack you could imagine. One
thing was certain, there was no television in there.
"Storm forecast for tonight!" said Uncle Vernon gleefully,
clapping his hands together. "And this gentleman's kindly agreed
to lend us his boat!"
A toothless old man came ambling up to them, pointing, with
a rather wicked grin, at an old rowboat bobbing in the iron-gray
water below them.
"I've already got us some rations," said Uncle Vernon, "so
all aboard!"
It was freezing in the boat. Icy sea spray and rain crept down
their necks and a chilly wind whipped their faces. After what seemed
like hours they reached the rock, where Uncle Vernon, slipping and
sliding, led the way to the broken-down house.
The inside was horrible; it smelled strongly of seaweed,
the wind whistled through the gaps in the wooden walls, and the
fireplace was damp and empty. There were only two rooms.
Uncle Vernon's rations turned out to be a bag of chips each and
four bananas. He tried to start a fire but the empty chip bags just
smoked and shriveled up.
"Could do with some of those letters now, eh?" he said
cheerfully.
He was in a very good mood. Obviously he thought nobody stood
a chance of reaching them here in a storm to deliver mail. Harry
privately agreed, though the thought didn't cheer him up at all.
As night fell, the promised storm blew up around them. Spray
from the high waves splattered the walls of the hut and a fierce
wind rattled the filthy windows. Aunt Petunia found a few moldy
blankets in the second room and made up a bed for Dudley on the
moth-eaten sofa. She and Uncle Vernon went off to the lumpy bed
next door, and Harry was left to find the softest bit of floor he
could and to curl up under the thinnest, most ragged blanket.
The storm raged more and more ferociously as the night went
on. Harry couldn't sleep. He shivered and turned over, trying to get
comfortable, his stomach rumbling with hunger. Dudley's snores were
drowned by the low rolls of thunder that started near midnight. The
lighted dial of Dudley's watch, which was dangling over the edge of
the sofa on his fat wrist, told Harry he'd be eleven in ten minutes'
time. He lay and watched his birthday tick nearer, wondering if the
Dursleys would remember at all, wondering where the letter writer
was now.
Five minutes to go. Harry heard something creak outside. He hoped
the roof wasn't going to fall in, although he might be warmer if
it did. Four minutes to go. Maybe the house in Privet Drive would
be so full of letters when they got back that he'd be able to steal
one somehow.
Three minutes to go. Was that the sea, slapping hard on the rock
like that? And (two minutes to go) what was that funny crunching
noise? Was the rock crumbling into the sea?
One minute to go and he'd be eleven. Thirty seconds... twenty
... ten... nine -- maybe he'd wake Dudley up, just to annoy him --
three... two... one...
BOOM.
The whole shack shivered and Harry sat bolt upright, staring
at the door. Someone was outside, knocking to come in.
CHAPTER FOUR
THE KEEPER OF THE KEYS
BOOM. They knocked again. Dudley jerked awake. "Where's the
cannon?" he said stupidly.
There was a crash behind them and Uncle Vernon came skidding
into the room. He was holding a rifle in his hands -- now they knew
what had been in the long, thin package he had brought with them.
"Who's there?" he shouted. "I warn you -- I'm armed!"
There was a pause. Then --
SMASH!
The door was hit with such force that it swung clean off its
hinges and with a deafening crash landed flat on the floor.
A giant of a man was standing in the doorway. His face was
almost completely hidden by a long, shaggy mane of hair and a wild,
tangled beard, but you could make out his eyes, glinting like black
beetles under all the hair.
The giant squeezed his way into the hut, stooping so that his
head just brushed the ceiling. He bent down, picked up the door,
and fitted it easily back into its frame. The noise of the storm
outside dropped a little. He turned to look at them all.
"Couldn't make us a cup o' tea, could yeh? It's not been an
easy journey..."
He strode over to the sofa where Dudley sat frozen with fear.
"Budge up, yeh great lump," said the stranger.
Dudley squeaked and ran to hide behind his mother, who was
crouching, terrified, behind Uncle Vernon.
"An' here's Harry!" said the giant.
Harry looked up into the fierce, wild, shadowy face and saw
that the beetle eyes were crinkled in a smile.
"Las' time I saw you, you was only a baby," said the giant. "Yeh
look a lot like yet dad, but yeh've got yet mom's eyes."
Uncle Vernon made a funny rasping noise.
I demand that you leave at once, sit!" he said. "You are breaking
and entering!"
"Ah, shut up, Dursley, yeh great prune," said the giant; he
reached over the back of the sofa, jerked the gun out of Uncle
Vernon's hands, bent it into a knot as easily as if it had been
made of rubber, and threw it into a corner of the room.
Uncle Vernon made another funny noise, like a mouse being
trodden on.
"Anyway -- Harry," said the giant, turning his back on the
Dursleys, "a very happy birthday to yeh. Got summat fer yeh here --
I mighta sat on it at some point, but it'll taste all right."
From an inside pocket of his black overcoat he pulled a slightly
squashed box. Harry opened it with trembling fingers. Inside was a
large, sticky chocolate cake with Happy Birthday Harry written on
it in green icing.
Harry looked up at the giant. He meant to say thank you, but the
words got lost on the way to his mouth, and what he said instead was,
"Who are you?"
The giant chuckled.
"True, I haven't introduced meself. Rubeus Hagrid, Keeper of
Keys and Grounds at Hogwarts."
He held out an enormous hand and shook Harry's whole arm.
"What about that tea then, eh?" he said, rubbing his hands
together. "I'd not say no ter summat stronger if yeh've got it,
mind."
His eyes fell on the empty grate with the shriveled chip bags in
it and he snorted. He bent down over the fireplace; they couldn't see
what he was doing but when he drew back a second later, there was
a roaring fire there. It filled the whole damp hut with flickering
light and Harry felt the warmth wash over him as though he'd sunk
into a hot bath.
The giant sat back down on the sofa, which sagged under his
weight, and began taking all sorts of things out of the pockets of
his coat: a copper kettle, a squashy package of sausages, a poker,
a teapot, several chipped mugs, and a bottle of some amber liquid
that he took a swig from before starting to make tea. Soon the hut
was full of the sound and smell of sizzling sausage. Nobody said a
thing while the giant was working, but as he slid the first six fat,
juicy, slightly burnt sausages from the poker, Dudley fidgeted a
little. Uncle Vernon said sharply, "Don't touch anything he gives
you, Dudley."
The giant chuckled darkly.
"Yet great puddin' of a son don' need fattenin' anymore, Dursley,
don' worry."
He passed the sausages to Harry, who was so hungry he had never
tasted anything so wonderful, but he still couldn't take his eyes
off the giant. Finally, as nobody seemed about to explain anything,
he said, "I'm sorry, but I still don't really know who you are."
The giant took a gulp of tea and wiped his mouth with the back
of his hand.
"Call me Hagrid," he said, "everyone does. An' like I told yeh,
I'm Keeper of Keys at Hogwarts -- yeh'll know all about Hogwarts,
o' course.
"Er -- no," said Harry.
Hagrid looked shocked.
"Sorry," Harry said quickly.
"Sony?" barked Hagrid, turning to stare at the Dursleys, who
shrank back into the shadows. "It' s them as should be sorry! I knew
yeh weren't gettin' yer letters but I never thought yeh wouldn't
even know abou' Hogwarts, fer cryin' out loud! Did yeh never wonder
where yet parents learned it all?"
"All what?" asked Harry.
"ALL WHAT?" Hagrid thundered. "Now wait jus' one second!"
He had leapt to his feet. In his anger he seemed to fill the
whole hut. The Dursleys were cowering against the wall.
"Do you mean ter tell me," he growled at the Dursleys, "that
this boy -- this boy! -- knows nothin' abou' -- about ANYTHING?"
Harry thought this was going a bit far. He had been to school,
after all, and his marks weren't bad.
"I know some things," he said. "I can, you know, do math and
stuff." But Hagrid simply waved his hand and said, "About our world,
I mean. Your world. My world. Yer parents' world."
"What world?"
Hagrid looked as if he was about to explode.
"DURSLEY!" he boomed.
Uncle Vernon, who had gone very pale, whispered something that
sounded like "Mimblewimble." Hagrid stared wildly at Harry.
"But yeh must know about yet mom and dad," he said. "I mean,
they're famous. You're famous."
"What? My -- my mom and dad weren't famous, were they?"
"Yeh don' know... yeh don' know..." Hagrid ran his fingers
through his hair, fixing Harry with a bewildered stare.
"Yeh don' know what yeh are?" he said finally.
Uncle Vernon suddenly found his voice.
"Stop!" he commanded. "Stop right there, sit! I forbid you to
tell the boy anything!"
A braver man than Vernon Dursley would have quailed under the
furious look Hagrid now gave him; when Hagrid spoke, his every
syllable trembled with rage.
"You never told him? Never told him what was in the letter
Dumbledore left fer him? I was there! I saw Dumbledore leave it,
Dursley! An' you've kept it from him all these years?"
"Kept what from me?" said Harry eagerly.
"STOP! I FORBID YOU!" yelled Uncle Vernon in panic.
Aunt Petunia gave a gasp of horror.
"Ah, go boil yet heads, both of yeh," said Hagrid. "Harry --
yet a wizard."
There was silence inside the hut. Only the sea and the whistling
wind could be heard.
"-- a what?" gasped Harry.
"A wizard, o' course," said Hagrid, sitting back down on the
sofa, which groaned and sank even lower, "an' a thumpin' good'un,
I'd say, once yeh've been trained up a bit. With a mum an' dad
like yours, what else would yeh be? An' I reckon it's abou' time
yeh read yer letter."
Harry stretched out his hand at last to take the yellowish
envelope, addressed in emerald green to Mr. H. Potter, The Floor,
Hut-on-the-Rock, The Sea. He pulled out the letter and read:
HOGWARTS SCHOOL of WITCHCRAFT and WIZARDRY
Headmaster: ALBUS DUMBLEDORE
(Order of Merlin, First Class, Grand Sorc., Chf. Warlock,
Supreme Mugwump, International Confed. of Wizards)
Dear Mr. Potter,
We are pleased to inform you that you have been accepted at
Hogwarts School of Witchcraft and Wizardry. Please find enclosed
a list of all necessary books and equipment.
Term begins on September 1. We await your owl by no later than
July 31. Yours sincerely,
Minerva McGonagall,
Deputy Headmistress
Questions exploded inside Harry's head like fireworks and he
couldn't decide which to ask first. After a few minutes he stammered,
"What does it mean, they await my owl?"
"Gallopin' Gorgons, that reminds me," said Hagrid, clapping a
hand to his forehead with enough force to knock over a cart horse,
and from yet another pocket inside his overcoat he pulled an owl --
a real, live, rather ruffled-looking owl -- a long quill, and a
roll of parchment. With his tongue between his teeth he scribbled
a note that Harry could read upside down:
Dear Professor Dumbledore,
Given Harry his letter.
Taking him to buy his things tomorrow.
Weather's horrible. Hope you're Well.
Hagrid
Hagrid rolled up the note, gave it to the owl, which clamped
it in its beak, went to the door, and threw the owl out into the
storm. Then he came back and sat down as though this was as normal
as talking on the telephone.
Harry realized his mouth was open and closed it quickly.
"Where was I?" said Hagrid, but at that moment, Uncle Vernon,
still ashen-faced but looking very angry, moved into the firelight.
"He's not going," he said.
Hagrid grunted.
"I'd like ter see a great Muggle like you stop him," he said.
"A what?" said Harry, interested.
"A Muggle," said Hagrid, "it's what we call nonmagic folk like
thern. An' it's your bad luck you grew up in a family o' the biggest
Muggles I ever laid eyes on."
"We swore when we took him in we'd put a stop to that rubbish,"
said Uncle Vernon, "swore we'd stamp it out of him! Wizard indeed!"
"You knew?" said Harry. "You knew I'm a -- a wizard?"
"Knew!" shrieked Aunt Petunia suddenly. "Knew! Of course we
knew! How could you not be, my dratted sister being what she was? Oh,
she got a letter just like that and disappeared off to that-that
school-and came home every vacation with her pockets full of frog
spawn, turning teacups into rats. I was the only one who saw her
for what she was -- a freak! But for my mother and father, oh no,
it was Lily this and Lily that, they were proud of having a witch
in the family!"
She stopped to draw a deep breath and then went ranting on. It
seemed she had been wanting to say all this for years.
"Then she met that Potter at school and they left and got married
and had you, and of course I knew you'd be just the same, just
as strange, just as -- as -- abnormal -- and then, if you please,
she went and got herself blown up and we got landed with you!"
Harry had gone very white. As soon as he found his voice he said,
"Blown up? You told me they died in a car crash!"
"CAR CRASH!" roared Hagrid, jumping up so angrily that the
Dursleys scuttled back to their corner. "How could a car crash kill
Lily an' James Potter? It's an outrage! A scandal! Harry Potter
not knowin' his own story when every kid in our world knows his
name!" "But why? What happened?" Harry asked urgently.
The anger faded from Hagrid's face. He looked suddenly anxious.
"I never expected this," he said, in a low, worried voice. "I
had no idea, when Dumbledore told me there might be trouble gettin'
hold of yeh, how much yeh didn't know. Ah, Harry, I don' know
if I'm the right person ter tell yeh -- but someone 3 s gotta --
yeh can't go off ter Hogwarts not knowin'."
He threw a dirty look at the Dursleys.
"Well, it's best yeh know as much as I can tell yeh -- mind,
I can't tell yeh everythin', it's a great myst'ry, parts of it...."
He sat down, stared into the fire for a few seconds, and then
said, "It begins, I suppose, with -- with a person called -- but it's
incredible yeh don't know his name, everyone in our world knows --"
"Who? "
"Well -- I don' like sayin' the name if I can help it. No
one does."
"Why not?"
"Gulpin' gargoyles, Harry, people are still scared. Blimey,
this is difficult. See, there was this wizard who went... bad. As
bad as you could go. Worse. Worse than worse. His name was..."
Hagrid gulped, but no words came out.
"Could you write it down?" Harry suggested.
"Nah -can't spell it. All right -- Voldemort. " Hagrid
shuddered. "Don' make me say it again. Anyway, this -- this wizard,
about twenty years ago now, started lookin' fer followers. Got 'em,
too -- some were afraid, some just wanted a bit o' his power, 'cause
he was gettin' himself power, all right. Dark days, Harry. Didn't
know who ter trust, didn't dare get friendly with strange wizards or
witches... terrible things happened. He was takin' over. 'Course,
some stood up to him -- an' he killed 'em. Horribly. One o' the
only safe places left was Hogwarts. Reckon Dumbledore's the only
one You-Know-Who was afraid of. Didn't dare try takin' the school,
not jus' then, anyway.
"Now, yer mum an' dad were as good a witch an' wizard as I
ever knew. Head boy an' girl at Hogwarts in their day! Suppose
the myst'ry is why You-Know-Who never tried to get 'em on his side
before... probably knew they were too close ter Dumbledore ter want
anythin' ter do with the Dark Side.
"Maybe he thought he could persuade 'em... maybe he just wanted
'em outta the way. All anyone knows is, he turned up in the village
where you was all living, on Halloween ten years ago. You was just
a year old. He came ter yer house an' -- an' --"
Hagrid suddenly pulled out a very dirty, spotted handkerchief
and blew his nose with a sound like a foghorn.
"Sorry," he said. "But it's that sad -- knew yer mum an' dad,
an' nicer people yeh couldn't find -- anyway..."
"You-Know-Who killed 'em. An' then -- an' this is the real
myst'ry of the thing -- he tried to kill you, too. Wanted ter
make a clean job of it, I suppose, or maybe he just liked killin'
by then. But he couldn't do it. Never wondered how you got that
mark on yer forehead? That was no ordinary cut. That's what yeh get
when a Powerful, evil curse touches yeh -- took care of yer mum an'
dad an' yer house, even -- but it didn't work on you, an' that's why
yer famous, Harry. No one ever lived after he decided ter kill 'em,
no one except you, an' he'd killed some o' the best witches an'
wizards of the age -- the McKinnons, the Bones, the Prewetts --
an' you was only a baby, an' you lived."
Something very painful was going on in Harry's mind. As Hagrid's
story came to a close, he saw again the blinding flash of green
light, more clearly than he had ever remembered it before -- and he
remembered something else, for the first time in his life: a high,
cold, cruel laugh.
Hagrid was watching him sadly.
"Took yeh from the ruined house myself, on Dumbledore's
orders. Brought yeh ter this lot..."
"Load of old tosh," said Uncle Vernon. Harry jumped; he had
almost forgotten that the Dursleys were there. Uncle Vernon certainly
seemed to have got back his courage. He was glaring at Hagrid and
his fists were clenched.
"Now, you listen here, boy," he snarled, "I accept there's
something strange about you, probably nothing a good beating
wouldn't have cured -- and as for all this about your parents,
well, they were weirdos, no denying it, and the world's better off
without them in my opinion -- asked for all they got, getting mixed
up with these wizarding types -- just what I expected, always knew
they'd come to a sticky end --"
But at that moment, Hagrid leapt from the sofa and drew a
battered pink umbrella from inside his coat. Pointing this at Uncle
Vernon like a sword, he said, "I'm warning you, Dursley -I'm warning
you -- one more word... "
In danger of being speared on the end of an umbrella by a
bearded giant, Uncle Vernon's courage failed again; he flattened
himself against the wall and fell silent.
"That's better," said Hagrid, breathing heavily and sitting back
down on the sofa, which this time sagged right down to the floor.
Harry, meanwhile, still had questions to ask, hundreds of them.
"But what happened to Vol--, sorry -- I mean, You-Know-Who?"
"Good question, Harry. Disappeared. Vanished. Same night he
tried ter kill you. Makes yeh even more famous. That's the biggest
myst'ry, see... he was gettin' more an' more powerful -- why'd he go?
"Some say he died. Codswallop, in my opinion. Dunno if he had
enough human left in him to die. Some say he's still out there,
bidin' his time, like, but I don' believe it. People who was on his
side came back ter ours. Some of 'em came outta kinda trances. Don~
reckon they could've done if he was comin' back.
"Most of us reckon he's still out there somewhere but lost his
powers. Too weak to carry on. 'Cause somethin' about you finished
him, Harry. There was somethin' goin' on that night he hadn't
counted on -- I dunno what it was, no one does -- but somethin'
about you stumped him, all right."
Hagrid looked at Harry with warmth and respect blazing in
his eyes, but Harry, instead of feeling pleased and proud, felt
quite sure there had been a horrible mistake. A wizard? Him? How
could he possibly be? He'd spent his life being clouted by Dudley,
and bullied by Aunt Petunia and Uncle Vernon; if he was really a
wizard, why hadn't they been turned into warty toads every time
they'd tried to lock him in his cupboard? If he'd once defeated
the greatest sorcerer in the world, how come Dudley had always been
able to kick him around like a football?
"Hagrid," he said quietly, "I think you must have made a
mistake. I don't think I can be a wizard."
To his surprise, Hagrid chuckled.
"Not a wizard, eh? Never made things happen when you was scared
or angry?"
Harry looked into the fire. Now he came to think about
it... every odd thing that had ever made his aunt and uncle
furious with him had happened when he, Harry, had been upset or
angry... chased by Dudley's gang, he had somehow found himself out
of their reach... dreading going to school with that ridiculous
haircut, he'd managed to make it grow back... and the very last
time Dudley had hit him, hadn't he got his revenge, without even
realizing he was doing it? Hadn't he set a boa constrictor on him?
Harry looked back at Hagrid, smiling, and saw that Hagrid was
positively beaming at him.
"See?" said Hagrid. "Harry Potter, not a wizard -- you wait,
you'll be right famous at Hogwarts."
But Uncle Vernon wasn't going to give in without a fight.
"Haven't I told you he's not going?" he hissed. "He's going to
Stonewall High and he'll be grateful for it. I've read those letters
and he needs all sorts of rubbish -- spell books and wands and --"
"If he wants ter go, a great Muggle like you won't stop
him," growled Hagrid. "Stop Lily an' James Potter' s son goin'
ter Hogwarts! Yer mad. His name's been down ever since he was
born. He's off ter the finest school of witchcraft and wizardry in
the world. Seven years there and he won't know himself. He'll be
with youngsters of his own sort, fer a change, an' he'll be under
the greatest headmaster Hogwarts ever had Albus Dumbled--"
"I AM NOT PAYING FOR SOME CRACKPOT OLD FOOL To TEACH HIM MAGIC
TRICKS!" yelled Uncle Vernon.
But he had finally gone too far. Hagrid seized his umbrella and
whirled it over his head, "NEVER," he thundered, "- INSULT- ALBUS-
DUMBLEDORE- IN- FRONT- OF- ME!"
He brought the umbrella swishing down through the air to point
at Dudley -- there was a flash of violet light, a sound like
a firecracker, a sharp squeal, and the next second, Dudley was
dancing on the spot with his hands clasped over his fat bottom,
howling in pain. When he turned his back on them, Harry saw a curly
pig's tail poking through a hole in his trousers.
Uncle Vernon roared. Pulling Aunt Petunia and Dudley into the
other room, he cast one last terrified look at Hagrid and slammed
the door behind them.
Hagrid looked down at his umbrella and stroked his beard.
"Shouldn'ta lost me temper," he said ruefully, "but it didn't
work anyway. Meant ter turn him into a pig, but I suppose he was
so much like a pig anyway there wasn't much left ter do."
He cast a sideways look at Harry under his bushy eyebrows.
"Be grateful if yeh didn't mention that ter anyone at
Hogwarts," he said. "I'm -- er -- not supposed ter do magic,
strictly speakin'. I was allowed ter do a bit ter follow yeh an'
get yer letters to yeh an' stuff -- one o' the reasons I was so
keen ter take on the job
"Why aren't you supposed to do magic?" asked Harry.
"Oh, well -- I was at Hogwarts meself but I -- er -- got
expelled, ter tell yeh the truth. In me third year. They snapped
me wand in half an' everything. But Dumbledore let me stay on as
gamekeeper. Great man, Dumbledore." "Why were you expelled?"
"It's gettin' late and we've got lots ter do tomorrow," said
Hagrid loudly. "Gotta get up ter town, get all yer books an' that."
He took off his thick black coat and threw it to Harry.
"You can kip under that," he said. "Don' mind if it wriggles a
bit, I think I still got a couple o' dormice in one o' the pockets."
CHAPTER FIVE
DIAGON ALLEY
Harry woke early the next morning. Although he could tell it
was daylight, he kept his eyes shut tight.
"It was a dream, he told himself firmly. "I dreamed a
giant called Hagrid came to tell me I was going to a school for
wizards. When I open my eyes I'll be at home in my cupboard."
There was suddenly a loud tapping noise.
And there's Aunt Petunia knocking on the door, Harry thought,
his heart sinking. But he still didn't open his eyes. It had been
such a good dream.
Tap. Tap. Tap.
"All right," Harry mumbled, "I'm getting up."
He sat up and Hagrid's heavy coat fell off him. The hut was full
of sunlight, the storm was over, Hagrid himself was asleep on the
collapsed sofa, and there was an owl rapping its claw on the window,
a newspaper held in its beak.
Harry scrambled to his feet, so happy he felt as though a large
balloon was swelling inside him. He went straight to the window
and jerked it open. The owl swooped in and dropped the newspaper
on top of Hagrid, who didn't wake up. The owl then fluttered onto
the floor and began to attack Hagrid's coat.
"Don't do that."
Harry tried to wave the owl out of the way, but it snapped its
beak fiercely at him and carried on savaging the coat.
"Hagrid!" said Harry loudly. "There's an owl
"Pay him," Hagrid grunted into the sofa.
"What?"
"He wants payin' fer deliverin' the paper. Look in the
pockets." Hagrid's coat seemed to be made of nothing but pockets --
bunches of keys, slug pellets, balls of string, peppermint humbugs,
teabags... finally, Harry pulled out a handful of strange-looking
coins.
"Give him five Knuts," said Hagrid sleepily.
"Knuts?"
"The little bronze ones."
Harry counted out five little bronze coins, and the owl held
out his leg so Harry could put the money into a small leather pouch
tied to it. Then he flew off through the open window.
Hagrid yawned loudly, sat up, and stretched.
"Best be Off, Harry, lots ter do today, gotta get up ter London
an' buy all yer stuff fer school."
Harry was turning over the wizard coins and looking at them. He
had just thought of something that made him feel as though the
happy balloon inside him had got a puncture.
"Um -- Hagrid?"
"Mm?" said Hagrid, who was pulling on his huge boots.
"I haven't got any money -- and you heard Uncle Vernon last
night ... he won't pay for me to go and learn magic."
"Don't worry about that," said Hagrid, standing up and scratching
his head. "D'yeh think yer parents didn't leave yeh anything?"
"But if their house was destroyed --"
"They didn' keep their gold in the house, boy! Nah, first stop
fer us is Gringotts. Wizards' bank. Have a sausage, they're not
bad cold -- an' I wouldn' say no teh a bit o' yer birthday cake,
neither."
"Wizards have banks?"
"Just the one. Gringotts. Run by goblins."
Harry dropped the bit of sausage he was holding.
"Goblins?"
"Yeah -- so yeh'd be mad ter try an' rob it, I'll tell yeh
that. Never mess with goblins, Harry. Gringotts is the safest place
in the world fer anything yeh want ter keep safe -- 'cept maybe
Hogwarts. As a matter o' fact, I gotta visit Gringotts anyway. Fer
Dumbledore. Hogwarts business." Hagrid drew himself up proudly. "He
usually gets me ter do important stuff fer him. Fetchin' you gettin'
things from Gringotts -- knows he can trust me, see.
"Got everythin'? Come on, then."
Harry followed Hagrid out onto the rock. The sky was quite
clear now and the sea gleamed in the sunlight. The boat Uncle Vernon
had hired was still there, with a lot of water in the bottom after
the storm.
"How did you get here?" Harry asked, looking around for another
boat. "Flew," said Hagrid.
"Flew?"
"Yeah -- but we'll go back in this. Not s'pposed ter use magic
now I've got yeh."
They settled down in the boat, Harry still staring at Hagrid,
trying to imagine him flying.
"Seems a shame ter row, though," said Hagrid, giving Harry
another of his sideways looks. "If I was ter -- er -- speed things
up a bit, would yeh mind not mentionin' it at Hogwarts?"
"Of course not," said Harry, eager to see more magic. Hagrid
pulled out the pink umbrella again, tapped it twice on the side of
the boat, and they sped off toward land.
"Why would you be mad to try and rob Gringotts?" Harry asked.
"Spells -- enchantments," said Hagrid, unfolding his newspaper
as he spoke. "They say there's dragons guardin' the highsecurity
vaults. And then yeh gotta find yer way -- Gringotts is hundreds
of miles under London, see. Deep under the Underground. Yeh'd die
of hunger tryin' ter get out, even if yeh did manage ter get yer
hands on summat."
Harry sat and thought about this while Hagrid read his
newspaper, the Daily Prophet. Harry had learned from Uncle Vernon
that people liked to be left alone while they did this, but it was
very difficult, he'd never had so many questions in his life.
"Ministry o' Magic messin' things up as usual," Hagrid muttered,
turning the page.
"There's a Ministry of Magic?" Harry asked, before he could
stop himself.
"'Course," said Hagrid. "They wanted Dumbledore fer Minister,
0 ' course, but he'd never leave Hogwarts, so old Cornelius Fudge
got the job. Bungler if ever there was one. So he pelts Dumbledore
with owls every morning, askin' fer advice."
"But what does a Ministry of Magic do?"
"Well, their main job is to keep it from the Muggles that
there's still witches an' wizards up an' down the country."
"Why?"
"Why? Blimey, Harry, everyone'd be wantin' magic solutions to
their problems. Nah, we're best left alone."
At this moment the boat bumped gently into the harbor
wall. Hagrid folded up his newspaper, and they clambered up the
stone steps onto the street.
Passersby stared a lot at Hagrid as they walked through the
little town to the station. Harry couldn't blame them. Not only was
Hagrid twice as tall as anyone else, he kept pointing at perfectly
ordinary things like parking meters and saying loudly, "See that,
Harry? Things these Muggles dream up, eh?"
"Hagrid," said Harry, panting a bit as he ran to keep up,
"did you say there are dragons at Gringotts?"
"Well, so they say," said Hagrid. "Crikey, I'd like a dragon."
"You'd like one?"
"Wanted one ever since I was a kid -- here we go."
They had reached the station. There was a train to London in
five minutes' time. Hagrid, who didn't understand "Muggle money," as
he called it, gave the bills to Harry so he could buy their tickets.
People stared more than ever on the train. Hagrid took up two
seats and sat knitting what looked like a canary-yellow circus tent.
"Still got yer letter, Harry?" he asked as he counted
stitches. Harry took the parchment envelope out of his pocket.
"Good," said Hagrid. "There's a list there of everything
yeh need."
Harry unfolded a second piece of paper he hadn't noticed the
night before, and read:
HOGWARTS SCHOOL of WITCHCRAFT and WIZARDRY
UNIFORM
First-year students will require:
1. Three sets of plain work robes (black)
2. One plain pointed hat (black) for day wear
3. One pair of protective gloves (dragon hide or similar)
4. One winter cloak (black, silver fastenings)
Please note that all pupils' clothes should carry name tags
COURSE BOOKS
All students should have a copy of each of the following:
The Standard Book of Spells (Grade 1) by Miranda Goshawk
A History of Magic by Bathilda Bagshot
Magical Theory by Adalbert Waffling
A Beginners' Guide to Transfiguration by Emetic Switch
One Thousand Magical Herbs and Fungi by Phyllida Spore
Magical Drafts and Potions by Arsenius Jigger
Fantastic Beasts and Where to Find Them by Newt Scamander
The Dark Forces: A Guide to Self-Protection by Quentin Trimble
OTHER EQUIPMENT
wand cauldron (pewter, standard size 2) set
glass or crystal phials
telescope set
brass scales
Students may also bring an owl OR a cat OR a toad
PARENTS ARE REMINDED THAT FIRST YEARS ARE NOT ALLOWED THEIR
OWN BROOMSTICKS
"Can we buy all this in London?" Harry wondered aloud.
"If yeh know where to go," said Hagrid.
Harry had never been to London before. Although Hagrid seemed
to know where he was going, he was obviously not used to getting
there in an ordinary way. He got stuck in the ticket barrier on the
Underground, and complained loudly that the seats were too small
and the trains too slow.
"I don't know how the Muggles manage without magic," he said
as they climbed a broken-down escalator that led up to a bustling
road lined with shops.
Hagrid was so huge that he parted the crowd easily; all Harry had
to do was keep close behind him. They passed book shops and music
stores, hamburger restaurants and cinemas, but nowhere that looked
as if it could sell you a magic wand. This was just an ordinary
street full of ordinary people. Could there really be piles of
wizard gold buried miles beneath them? Were there really shops
that sold spell books and broomsticks? Might this not all be some
huge joke that the Dursleys had cooked up? If Harry hadn't known
that the Dursleys had no sense of humor, he might have thought so;
yet somehow, even though everything Hagrid had told him so far was
unbelievable, Harry couldn't help trusting him.
"This is it," said Hagrid, coming to a halt, "the Leaky
Cauldron. It's a famous place."
It was a tiny, grubby-looking pub. If Hagrid hadn't pointed it
out, Harry wouldn't have noticed it was there. The people hurrying
by didn't glance at it. Their eyes slid from the big book shop on
one side to the record shop on the other as if they couldn't see the
Leaky Cauldron at all. In fact, Harry had the most peculiar feeling
that only he and Hagrid could see it. Before he could mention this,
Hagrid had steered him inside.
For a famous place, it was very dark and shabby. A few old women
were sitting in a corner, drinking tiny glasses of sherry. One
of them was smoking a long pipe. A little man in a top hat was
talking to the old bartender, who was quite bald and looked like a
toothless walnut. The low buzz of chatter stopped when they walked
in. Everyone seemed to know Hagrid; they waved and smiled at him,
and the bartender reached for a glass, saying, "The usual, Hagrid?"
"Can't, Tom, I'm on Hogwarts business," said Hagrid, clapping
his great hand on Harry's shoulder and making Harry's knees buckle.
"Good Lord," said the bartender, peering at Harry, "is this --
can this be --?"
The Leaky Cauldron had suddenly gone completely still and silent.
"Bless my soul," whispered the old bartender, "Harry
Potter... what an honor."
He hurried out from behind the bar, rushed toward Harry and
seized his hand, tears in his eyes.
"Welcome back, Mr. Potter, welcome back."
Harry didn't know what to say. Everyone was looking at him. The
old woman with the pipe was puffing on it without realizing it had
gone out. Hagrid was beaming.
Then there was a great scraping of chairs and the next moment,
Harry found himself shaking hands with everyone in the Leaky
Cauldron.
"Doris Crockford, Mr. Potter, can't believe I'm meeting you
at last."
"So proud, Mr. Potter, I'm just so proud."
"Always wanted to shake your hand -- I'm all of a flutter."
"Delighted, Mr. Potter, just can't tell you, Diggle's the name,
Dedalus Diggle."
"I've seen you before!" said Harry, as Dedalus Diggle's top
hat fell off in his excitement. "You bowed to me once in a shop."
"He remembers!" cried Dedalus Diggle, looking around at
everyone. "Did you hear that? He remembers me!" Harry shook hands
again and again -- Doris Crockford kept coming back for more.
A pale young man made his way forward, very nervously. One of
his eyes was twitching.
"Professor Quirrell!" said Hagrid. "Harry, Professor Quirrell
will be one of your teachers at Hogwarts."
"P-P-Potter," stammered Professor Quirrell, grasping Harry's
hand, "c-can't t-tell you how p- pleased I am to meet you."
"What sort of magic do you teach, Professor Quirrell?"
"D-Defense Against the D-D-Dark Arts," muttered Professor
Quirrell, as though he'd rather not think about it. "N-not that
you n-need it, eh, P-P-Potter?" He laughed nervously. "You'll be
g-getting all your equipment, I suppose? I've g-got to p-pick up
a new b-book on vampires, m-myself." He looked terrified at the
very thought.
But the others wouldn't let Professor Quirrell keep Harry to
himself. It took almost ten minutes to get away from them all. At
last, Hagrid managed to make himself heard over the babble.
"Must get on -- lots ter buy. Come on, Harry."
Doris Crockford shook Harry's hand one last time, and Hagrid
led them through the bar and out into a small, walled courtyard,
where there was nothing but a trash can and a few weeds.
Hagrid grinned at Harry.
"Told yeh, didn't I? Told yeh you was famous. Even Professor
Quirrell was tremblin' ter meet yeh -- mind you, he's usually
tremblin'."
"Is he always that nervous?"
"Oh, yeah. Poor bloke. Brilliant mind. He was fine while he was
studyin' outta books but then he took a year off ter get some
firsthand experience.... They say he met vampires in the Black
Forest, and there was a nasty bit o' trouble with a hag -- never
been the same since. Scared of the students, scared of his own
subject now, where's me umbrella?"
Vampires? Hags? Harry's head was swimming. Hagrid, meanwhile,
was counting bricks in the wall above the trash can.
"Three up... two across he muttered. "Right, stand back, Harry."
He tapped the wall three times with the point of his umbrella.
The brick he had touched quivered -- it wriggled -- in the
middle, a small hole appeared -- it grew wider and wider -- a second
later they were facing an archway large enough even for Hagrid, an
archway onto a cobbled street that twisted and turned out of sight.
"Welcome," said Hagrid, "to Diagon Alley."
He grinned at Harry's amazement. They stepped through the
archway. Harry looked quickly over his shoulder and saw the archway
shrink instantly back into solid wall.
The sun shone brightly on a stack of cauldrons outside the
nearest shop. Cauldrons -- All Sizes - Copper, Brass, Pewter, Silver
-- Self-Stirring -- Collapsible, said a sign hanging over them.
"Yeah, you'll be needin' one," said Hagrid, "but we gotta get
yer money first."
Harry wished he had about eight more eyes. He turned his head
in every direction as they walked up the street, trying to look at
everything at once: the shops, the things outside them, the people
doing their shopping. A plump woman outside an Apothecary was
shaking her head as they passed, saying, "Dragon liver, seventeen
Sickles an ounce, they're mad...."
A low, soft hooting came from a dark shop with a sign
saying Eeylops Owl Emporium -- Tawny, Screech, Barn, Brown, and
Snowy. Several boys of about Harry's age had their noses pressed
against a window with broomsticks in it. "Look," Harry heard
one of them say, "the new Nimbus Two Thousand -- fastest ever --"
There were shops selling robes, shops selling telescopes and strange
silver instruments Harry had never seen before, windows stacked with
barrels of bat spleens and eels' eyes, tottering piles of spell
books, quills, and rolls of parchment, potion bottles, globes of
the moon....
"Gringotts," said Hagrid.
They had reached a snowy white building that towered over the
other little shops. Standing beside its burnished bronze doors,
wearing a uniform of scarlet and gold, was -
"Yeah, that's a goblin," said Hagrid quietly as they walked
up the white stone steps toward him. The goblin was about a head
shorter than Harry. He had a swarthy, clever face, a pointed beard
and, Harry noticed, very long fingers and feet. He bowed as they
walked inside. Now they were facing a second pair of doors, silver
this time, with words engraved upon them:
Enter, stranger, but take heed
Of what awaits the sin of greed,
For those who take, but do not earn,
Must pay most dearly in their turn.
So if you seek beneath our floors
A treasure that was never yours,
Thief, you have been warned, beware
Of finding more than treasure there.
"Like I said, Yeh'd be mad ter try an' rob it," said Hagrid.
A pair of goblins bowed them through the silver doors and they
were in a vast marble hall. About a hundred more goblins were sitting
on high stools behind a long counter, scribbling in large ledgers,
weighing coins in brass scales, examining precious stones through
eyeglasses. There were too many doors to count leading off the hall,
and yet more goblins were showing people in and out of these. Hagrid
and Harry made for the counter.
"Morning," said Hagrid to a free goblin. "We've come ter take
some money outta Mr. Harry Potter's safe."
"You have his key, Sir?"
"Got it here somewhere," said Hagrid, and he started emptying
his pockets onto the counter, scattering a handful of moldy dog
biscuits over the goblin's book of numbers. The goblin wrinkled
his nose. Harry watched the goblin on their right weighing a pile
of rubies as big as glowing coals.
"Got it," said Hagrid at last, holding up a tiny golden key.
The goblin looked at it closely.
"That seems to be in order."
"An' I've also got a letter here from Professor Dumbledore,"
said Hagrid importantly, throwing out his chest. "It's about the
YouKnow-What in vault seven hundred and thirteen."
The goblin read the letter carefully.
"Very well," he said, handing it back to Hagrid, "I will have
Someone take you down to both vaults. Griphook!"
Griphook was yet another goblin. Once Hagrid had crammed all
the dog biscuits back inside his pockets, he and Harry followed
Griphook toward one of the doors leading off the hall.
"What's the You-Know-What in vault seven hundred and
thirteen?" Harry asked.
"Can't tell yeh that," said Hagrid mysteriously. "Very
secret. Hogwarts business. Dumbledore's trusted me. More'n my job's
worth ter tell yeh that."
Griphook held the door open for them. Harry, who had expected
more marble, was surprised. They were in a narrow stone passageway
lit with flaming torches. It sloped steeply downward and there were
little railway tracks on the floor. Griphook whistled and a small
cart came hurtling up the tracks toward them. They climbed in --
Hagrid with some difficulty -- and were off.
At first they just hurtled through a maze of twisting
passages. Harry tried to remember, left, right, right, left, middle
fork, right, left, but it was impossible. The rattling cart seemed
to know its own way, because Griphook wasn't steering.
Harry's eyes stung as the cold air rushed past them, but he kept
them wide open. Once, he thought he saw a burst of fire at the end
of a passage and twisted around to see if it was a dragon, but too
late - - they plunged even deeper, passing an underground lake where
huge stalactites and stalagmites grew from the ceiling and floor.
I never know," Harry called to Hagrid over the noise of the cart,
"what's the difference between a stalagmite and a stalactite?"
"Stalagmite's got an 'm' in it," said Hagrid. "An' don' ask me
questions just now, I think I'm gonna be sick."
He did look very green, and when the cart stopped at last beside
a small door in the passage wall, Hagrid got out and had to lean
against the wall to stop his knees from trembling.
Griphook unlocked the door. A lot of green smoke came billowing
out, and as it cleared, Harry gasped. Inside were mounds of gold
coins. Columns of silver. Heaps of little bronze Knuts.
"All yours," smiled Hagrid.
All Harry's -- it was incredible. The Dursleys couldn't
have known about this or they'd have had it from him faster than
blinking. How often had they complained how much Harry cost them
to keep? And all the time there had been a small fortune belonging
to him, buried deep under London.
Hagrid helped Harry pile some of it into a bag.
"The gold ones are Galleons," he explained. "Seventeen silver
Sickles to a Galleon and twenty-nine Knuts to a Sickle, it's easy
enough. Right, that should be enough fer a couple o' terms, we'll
keep the rest safe for yeh." He turned to Griphook. "Vault seven
hundred and thirteen now, please, and can we go more slowly?"
"One speed only," said Griphook.
They were going even deeper now and gathering speed. The air
became colder and colder as they hurtled round tight corners. They
went rattling over an underground ravine, and Harry leaned over
the side to try to see what was down at the dark bottom, but Hagrid
groaned and pulled him back by the scruff of his neck.
Vault seven hundred and thirteen had no keyhole.
"Stand back," said Griphook importantly. He stroked the door
gently with one of his long fingers and it simply melted away.
"If anyone but a Gringotts goblin tried that, they'd be sucked
through the door and trapped in there," said Griphook.
"How often do you check to see if anyone's inside?" Harry asked.
"About once every ten years," said Griphook with a rather
nasty grin.
Something really extraordinary had to be inside this top security
vault, Harry was sure, and he leaned forward eagerly, expecting to
see fabulous jewels at the very least -- but at first he thought
it was empty. Then he noticed a grubby little package wrapped up
in brown paper lying on the floor. Hagrid picked it up and tucked
it deep inside his coat. Harry longed to know what it was, but knew
better than to ask.
"Come on, back in this infernal cart, and don't talk to me on
the way back, it's best if I keep me mouth shut," said Hagrid.
One wild cart ride later they stood blinking in the sunlight
outside Gringotts. Harry didn't know where to run first now that he
had a bag full of money. He didn't have to know how many Galleons
there were to a pound to know that he was holding more money than
he'd had in his whole life -- more money than even Dudley had
ever had.
"Might as well get yer uniform," said Hagrid, nodding toward
Madam Malkin's Robes for All Occasions. "Listen, Harry, would yeh
mind if I slipped off fer a pick-me-up in the Leaky Cauldron? I
hate them Gringotts carts." He did still look a bit sick, so Harry
entered Madam Malkin's shop alone, feeling nervous.
Madam Malkin was a squat, smiling witch dressed all in mauve.
"Hogwarts, clear?" she said, when Harry started to speak. "Got
the lot here -- another young man being fitted up just now, in
fact. "
In the back of the shop, a boy with a pale, pointed face was
standing on a footstool while a second witch pinned up his long black
robes. Madam Malkin stood Harry on a stool next to him) slipped a
long robe over his head, and began to pin it to the right length.
"Hello," said the boy, "Hogwarts, too?"
"Yes," said Harry.
"My father's next door buying my books and mother's up the
street looking at wands," said the boy. He had a bored, drawling
voice. "Then I'm going to drag them off to took at racing brooms. I
don't see why first years can't have their own. I think I'll bully
father into getting me one and I'll smuggle it in somehow."
Harry was strongly reminded of Dudley.
"Have you got your own broom?" the boy went on.
"No," said Harry.
"Play Quidditch at all?"
"No," Harry said again, wondering what on earth Quidditch
could be.
"I do -- Father says it's a crime if I'm not picked to play for
my house, and I must say, I agree. Know what house you'll be in yet?"
"No," said Harry, feeling more stupid by the minute.
"Well, no one really knows until they get there, do they, but I
know I'll be in Slytherin, all our family have been -- imagine being
in Hufflepuff, I think I'd leave, wouldn't you?" "Mmm," said Harry,
wishing he could say something a bit more interesting.
"I say, look at that man!" said the boy suddenly, nodding toward
the front window. Hagrid was standing there, grinning at Harry and
pointing at two large ice creams to show he couldn't come in.
"That's Hagrid," said Harry, pleased to know something the boy
didn't. "He works at Hogwarts."
"Oh," said the boy, "I've heard of him. He's a sort of servant,
isn't he?"
"He's the gamekeeper," said Harry. He was liking the boy less
and less every second.
"Yes, exactly. I heard he's a sort of savage -- lives in a
hut on the school grounds and every now and then he gets drunk,
tries to do magic, and ends up setting fire to his bed."
"I think he's brilliant," said Harry coldly.
"Do you?" said the boy, with a slight sneer. "Why is he with
you? Where are your parents?"
"They're dead," said Harry shortly. He didn't feel much like
going into the matter with this boy.
"Oh, sorry," said the other,. not sounding sorry at all. "But
they were our kind, weren't they?"
"They were a witch and wizard, if that's what you mean."
"I really don't think they should let the other sort in, do
you? They're just not the same, they've never been brought up to
know our ways. Some of them have never even heard of Hogwarts until
they get the letter, imagine. I think they should keep it in the
old wizarding families. What's your surname, anyway?"
But before Harry could answer, Madam Malkin said, "That's you
done, my dear," and Harry, not sorry for an excuse to stop talking
to the boy, hopped down from the footstool.
"Well, I'll see you at Hogwarts, I suppose," said the drawling
boy.
Harry was rather quiet as he ate the ice cream Hagrid had bought
him (chocolate and raspberry with chopped nuts).
"What's up?" said Hagrid.
"Nothing," Harry lied. They stopped to buy parchment and
quills. Harry cheered up a bit when he found a bottle of ink that
changed color as you wrote. When they had left the shop, he said,
"Hagrid, what's Quidditch?"
"Blimey, Harry, I keep forgettin' how little yeh know -- not
knowin' about Quidditch!"
"Don't make me feel worse," said Harry. He told Hagrid about
the pate boy in Madam Malkin's.
"--and he said people from Muggle families shouldn't even be
allowed in."
"Yer not from a Muggle family. If he'd known who yeh were
-- he's grown up knowin' yer name if his parents are wizardin'
folk. You saw what everyone in the Leaky Cauldron was like when
they saw yeh. Anyway, what does he know about it, some o' the best
I ever saw were the only ones with magic in 'em in a long line 0'
Muggles -- look at yer mum! Look what she had fer a sister!"
"So what is Quidditch?"
"It's our sport. Wizard sport. It's like -- like soccer in the
Muggle world -- everyone follows Quidditch -- played up in the air
on broomsticks and there's four balls -- sorta hard ter explain
the rules." "And what are Slytherin and Hufflepuff?"
"School houses. There's four. Everyone says Hufflepuff are a
lot o' duffers, but --"
"I bet I'm in Hufflepuff" said Harry gloomily.
"Better Hufflepuff than Slytherin," said Hagrid darkly. "There's
not a single witch or wizard who went bad who wasn't in
Slytherin. You-Know-Who was one."
"Vol-, sorry - You-Know-Who was at Hogwarts?"
"Years an' years ago," said Hagrid.
They bought Harry's school books in a shop called Flourish
and Blotts where the shelves were stacked to the ceiling with
books as large as paving stones bound in leather; books the
size of postage stamps in covers of silk; books full of peculiar
symbols and a few books with nothing in them at all. Even Dudley,
who never read anything, would have been wild to get his hands on
some of these. Hagrid almost had to drag Harry away from Curses and
Countercurses (Bewitch Your Friends and Befuddle Your Enemies with
the Latest Revenges: Hair Loss, Jelly-Legs, Tongue- Tying and Much,
Much More) by Professor Vindictus Viridian.
"I was trying to find out how to curse Dudley."
"I'm not sayin' that's not a good idea, but yer not ter use
magic in the Muggle world except in very special circumstances,"
said Hagrid. "An' anyway, yeh couldn' work any of them curses yet,
yeh'll need a lot more study before yeh get ter that level."
Hagrid wouldn't let Harry buy a solid gold cauldron, either
("It says pewter on yer list"), but they got a nice set of
scales for weighing potion ingredients and a collapsible brass
telescope. Then they visited the Apothecary, which was fascinating
enough to make up for its horrible smell, a mixture of bad eggs
and rotted cabbages. Barrels of slimy stuff stood on the floor;
jars of herbs, dried roots, and bright powders lined the walls;
bundles of feathers, strings of fangs, and snarled claws hung from
the ceiling. While Hagrid asked the man behind the counter for a
supply of some basic potion ingredients for Harry, Harry himself
examined silver unicorn horns at twenty-one Galleons each and
minuscule, glittery-black beetle eyes (five Knuts a scoop).
Outside the Apothecary, Hagrid checked Harry's list again.
"Just yer wand left - A yeah, an' I still haven't got yeh a
birthday present."
Harry felt himself go red.
"You don't have to --"
"I know I don't have to. Tell yeh what, I'll get yer animal. Not
a toad, toads went outta fashion years ago, yeh'd be laughed at - an'
I don' like cats, they make me sneeze. I'll get yer an owl. All the
kids want owls, they're dead useful, carry yer mail an' everythin'."
Twenty minutes later, they left Eeylops Owl Emporium, which
had been dark and full of rustling and flickering, jewel-bright
eyes. Harry now carried a large cage that held a beautiful snowy
owl, fast asleep with her head under her wing. He couldn't stop
stammering his thanks, sounding just like Professor Quirrell.
"Don' mention it," said Hagrid gruffly. "Don' expect you've had
a lotta presents from them Dursleys. Just Ollivanders left now -
only place fer wands, Ollivanders, and yeh gotta have the best wand."
A magic wand... this was what Harry had been really looking
forward to.
The last shop was narrow and shabby. Peeling gold letters over
the door read Ollivanders: Makers of Fine Wands since 382 B.C. A
single wand lay on a faded purple cushion in the dusty window.
A tinkling bell rang somewhere in the depths of the shop as they
stepped inside. It was a tiny place, empty except for a single,
spindly chair that Hagrid sat on to wait. Harry felt strangely as
though he had entered a very strict library; he swallowed a lot
of new questions that had just occurred to him and looked instead
at the thousands of narrow boxes piled neatly right up to the
ceiling. For some reason, the back of his neck prickled. The very
dust and silence in here seemed to tingle with some secret magic.
"Good afternoon," said a soft voice. Harry jumped. Hagrid must
have jumped, too, because there was a loud crunching noise and he
got quickly off the spindly chair.
An old man was standing before them, his wide, pale eyes shining
like moons through the gloom of the shop.
"Hello," said Harry awkwardly.
"Ah yes," said the man. "Yes, yes. I thought I'd be seeing
you soon. Harry Potter." It wasn't a question. "You have your
mother's eyes. It seems only yesterday she was in here herself,
buying her first wand. Ten and a quarter inches long, swishy,
made of willow. Nice wand for charm work."
Mr. Ollivander moved closer to Harry. Harry wished he would
blink. Those silvery eyes were a bit creepy.
"Your father, on the other hand, favored a mahogany
wand. Eleven inches. Pliable. A little more power and excellent for
transfiguration. Well, I say your father favored it -- it's really
the wand that chooses the wizard, of course."
Mr. Ollivander had come so close that he and Harry were almost
nose to nose. Harry could see himself reflected in those misty eyes.
"And that's where..."
Mr. Ollivander touched the lightning scar on Harry's forehead
with a long, white finger.
"I'm sorry to say I sold the wand that did it," he said
softly. "Thirteen-and-a-half inches. Yew. Powerful wand, very
powerful, and in the wrong hands... well, if I'd known what that
wand was going out into the world to do...."
He shook his head and then, to Harry's relief, spotted Hagrid.
"Rubeus! Rubeus Hagrid! How nice to see you again.... Oak,
sixteen inches, rather bendy, wasn't it?"
"It was, sir, yes," said Hagrid.
"Good wand, that one. But I suppose they snapped it in half
when you got expelled?" said Mr. Ollivander, suddenly stern.
"Er -- yes, they did, yes," said Hagrid, shuffling his
feet. "I've still got the pieces, though," he added brightly.
"But you don't use them?" said Mr. Ollivander sharply.
"Oh, no, sit," said Hagrid quickly. Harry noticed he gripped
his pink umbrella very tightly as he spoke.
"Hmmm," said Mr. Ollivander, giving Hagrid a piercing
look. "Well, now -- Mr. Potter. Let me see." He pulled a long tape
measure with silver markings out of his pocket. "Which is your
wand arm?"
"Er -- well, I'm right-handed," said Harry.
"Hold out your arm. That's it." He measured Harry from shoulder
to finger, then wrist to elbow, shoulder to floor, knee to armpit
and round his head. As he measured, he said, "Every Ollivander
wand has a core of a powerful magical substance, Mr. Potter. We
use unicorn hairs, phoenix tail feathers, and the heartstrings
of dragons. No two Ollivander wands are the same, just as no two
unicorns, dragons, or phoenixes are quite the same. And of course,
you will never get such good results with another wizard's wand."
Harry suddenly realized that the tape measure, which
was measuring between his nostrils, was doing this on its
own. Mr. Ollivander was flitting around the shelves, taking down
boxes.
"That will do," he said, and the tape measure crumpled into a
heap on the floor. "Right then, Mr. Potter. Try this one. Beechwood
and dragon heartstring. Nine inches. Nice and flexible. just take
it and give it a wave."
Harry took the wand and (feeling foolish) waved it around a bit,
but Mr. Ollivander snatched it out of his hand almost at once.
"Maple and phoenix feather. Seven inches. Quite whippy. Try --"
Harry tried -- but he had hardly raised the wand when it, too,
was snatched back by Mr. Ollivander.
"No, no -here, ebony and unicorn hair, eight and a half inches,
springy. Go on, go on, try it out."
Harry tried. And tried. He had no idea what Mr. Ollivander was
waiting for. The pile of tried wands was mounting higher and higher
on the spindly chair, but the more wands Mr. Ollivander pulled from
the shelves, the happier he seemed to become.
"Tricky customer, eh? Not to worry, we'll find the perfect
match here somewhere -- I wonder, now - - yes, why not -- unusual
combination -- holly and phoenix feather, eleven inches, nice
and supple."
Harry took the wand. He felt a sudden warmth in his fingers. He
raised the wand above his head, brought it swishing down through the
dusty air and a stream of red and gold sparks shot from the end like
a firework, throwing dancing spots of light on to the walls. Hagrid
whooped and clapped and Mr. Ollivander cried, "Oh, bravo! Yes,
indeed, oh, very good. Well, well, well... how curious... how very
curious... "
He put Harry's wand back into its box and wrapped it in brown
paper, still muttering, "Curious... curious..
"Sorry," said Harry, "but what's curious?"
Mr. Ollivander fixed Harry with his pale stare.
"I remember every wand I've ever sold, Mr. Potter. Every single
wand. It so happens that the phoenix whose tail feather is in your
wand, gave another feather -- just one other. It is very curious
indeed that you should be destined for this wand when its brother
why, its brother gave you that scar."
Harry swallowed.
"Yes, thirteen-and-a-half inches. Yew. Curious indeed how these
things happen. The wand chooses the wizard, remember.... I think
we must expect great things from you, Mr. Potter.... After all, He-
Who-Must-Not-Be-Named did great things -- terrible, yes, but great."
Harry shivered. He wasn't sure he liked Mr. Ollivander too
much. He paid seven gold Galleons for his wand, and Mr. Ollivander
bowed them from his shop.
The late afternoon sun hung low in the sky as Harry and Hagrid
made their way back down Diagon Alley, back through the wall, back
through the Leaky Cauldron, now empty. Harry didn't speak at all
as they walked down the road; he didn't even notice how much people
were gawking at them on the Underground, laden as they were with all
their funny-shaped packages, with the snowy owl asleep in its cage on
Harry's lap. Up another escalator, out into Paddington station; Harry
only realized where they were when Hagrid tapped him on the shoulder.
"Got time fer a bite to eat before yer train leaves," he said.
He bought Harry a hamburger and they sat down on plastic seats
to eat them. Harry kept looking around. Everything looked so strange,
somehow.
"You all right, Harry? Yer very quiet," said Hagrid.
Harry wasn't sure he could explain. He'd just had the best
birthday of his life -- and yet -- he chewed his hamburger, trying
to find the words.
"Everyone thinks I'm special," he said at last. "All those people
in the Leaky Cauldron, Professor Quirrell, Mr. Ollivander... but I
don't know anything about magic at all. How can they expect great
things? I'm famous and I can't even remember what I'm famous for. I
don't know what happened when Vol-, sorry -- I mean, the night my
parents died."
Hagrid leaned across the table. Behind the wild beard and
eyebrows he wore a very kind smile.
"Don' you worry, Harry. You'll learn fast enough. Everyone
starts at the beginning at Hogwarts, you'll be just fine. just
be yerself. I know it's hard. Yeh've been singled out, an' that's
always hard. But yeh'll have a great time at Hogwarts -- I did --
still do, 'smatter of fact."
Hagrid helped Harry on to the train that would take him back
to the Dursleys, then handed him an envelope.
"Yer ticket fer Hogwarts, " he said. "First o' September --
King's Cross -- it's all on yer ticket. Any problems with the
Dursleys, send me a letter with yer owl, she'll know where to find
me.... See yeh soon, Harry."
The train pulled out of the station. Harry wanted to watch
Hagrid until he was out of sight; he rose in his seat and pressed
his nose against the window, but he blinked and Hagrid had gone.
CHAPTER SIX
THE JOURNEY FROM PLATFORM NINE AND THREE-QUARTERS
Harry's last month with the Dursleys wasn't fun. True, Dudley was
now so scared of Harry he wouldn't stay in the same room, while Aunt
Petunia and Uncle Vernon didn't shut Harry in his cupboard, force
him to do anything, or shout at him -- in fact, they didn't speak to
him at all. Half terrified, half furious, they acted as though any
chair with Harry in it were empty. Although this was an improvement
in many ways, it did become a bit depressing after a while.
Harry kept to his room, with his new owl for company. He had
decided to call her Hedwig, a name he had found in A History of
Magic. His school books were very interesting. He lay on his bed
reading late into the night, Hedwig swooping in and out of the
open window as she pleased. It was lucky that Aunt Petunia didn't
come in to vacuum anymore, because Hedwig kept bringing back dead
mice. Every night before he went to sleep, Harry ticked off another
day on the piece of paper he had pinned to the wall, counting down
to September the first.
On the last day of August he thought he'd better speak to his
aunt and uncle about getting to King's Cross station the next day,
so he went down to the living room where they were watching a quiz
show on television. He cleared his throat to let them know he was
there, and Dudley screamed and ran from the room.
"Er -- Uncle Vernon?"
Uncle Vernon grunted to show he was listening.
"Er -- I need to be at King's Cross tomorrow to -- to go to
Hogwarts."
Uncle Vernon grunted again.
"Would it be all right if you gave me a lift?"
Grunt. Harry supposed that meant yes.
"Thank you."
He was about to go back upstairs when Uncle Vernon actually
spoke.
"Funny way to get to a wizards' school, the train. Magic carpets
all got punctures, have they?"
Harry didn't say anything.
"Where is this school, anyway?"
"I don't know," said Harry, realizing this for the first time. He
pulled the ticket Hagrid had given him out of his pocket.
"I just take the train from platform nine and three-quarters
at eleven o'clock," he read.
His aunt and uncle stared.
"Platform what?"
"Nine and three-quarters."
"Don't talk rubbish," said Uncle Vernon. "There is no platform
nine and three-quarters."
"It's on my ticket."
"Barking," said Uncle Vernon, "howling mad, the lot of
them. You'll see. You just wait. All right, we'll take you to
King's Cross. We're going up to London tomorrow anyway, or I
wouldn't bother."
"Why are you going to London?" Harry asked, trying to keep
things friendly.
"Taking Dudley to the hospital," growled Uncle Vernon. "Got to
have that ruddy tail removed before he goes to Smeltings."
Harry woke at five o'clock the next morning and was too excited
and nervous to go back to sleep. He got up and pulled on his jeans
because he didn't want to walk into the station in his wizard's
robes -- he'd change on the train. He checked his Hogwarts list yet
again to make sure he had everything he needed, saw that Hedwig was
shut safely in her cage, and then paced the room, waiting for the
Dursleys to get up. Two hours later, Harry's huge, heavy trunk had
been loaded into the Dursleys' car, Aunt Petunia had talked Dudley
into sitting next to Harry, and they had set off.
They reached King's Cross at half past ten. Uncle Vernon
dumped Harry's trunk onto a cart and wheeled it into the station
for him. Harry thought this was strangely kind until Uncle Vernon
stopped dead, facing the platforms with a nasty grin on his face.
"Well, there you are, boy. Platform nine -- platform ten. Your
platform should be somewhere in the middle, but they don't seem to
have built it yet, do they?"
He was quite right, of course. There was a big plastic number
nine over one platform and a big plastic number ten over the one
next to it, and in the middle, nothing at all.
"Have a good term," said Uncle Vernon with an even nastier
smile. He left without another word. Harry turned and saw the
Dursleys drive away. All three of them were laughing. Harry's mouth
went rather dry. What on earth was he going to do? He was starting
to attract a lot of funny looks, because of Hedwig. He'd have to
ask someone.
He stopped a passing guard, but didn't dare mention platform
nine and three-quarters. The guard had never heard of Hogwarts and
when Harry couldn't even tell him what part of the country it was
in, he started to get annoyed, as though Harry was being stupid on
purpose. Getting desperate, Harry asked for the train that left at
eleven o'clock, but the guard said there wasn't one. In the end
the guard strode away, muttering about time wasters. Harry was
now trying hard not to panic. According to the large clock over
the arrivals board, he had ten minutes left to get on the train to
Hogwarts and he had no idea how to do it; he was stranded in the
middle of a station with a trunk he could hardly lift, a pocket
full of wizard money, and a large owl.
Hagrid must have forgotten to tell him something you had to do,
like tapping the third brick on the left to get into Diagon Alley. He
wondered if he should get out his wand and start tapping the ticket
inspector's stand between platforms nine and ten.
At that moment a group of people passed just behind him and he
caught a few words of what they were saying.
"-- packed with Muggles, of course --"
Harry swung round. The speaker was a plump woman who was talking
to four boys, all with flaming red hair. Each of them was pushing
a trunk like Harry's in front of him -- and they had an owl.
Heart hammering, Harry pushed his cart after them. They stopped
and so did he, just near enough to hear what they were saying.
"Now, what's the platform number?" said the boys' mother.
"Nine and three-quarters!" piped a small girl, also red-headed,
who was holding her hand, "Mom, can't I go... "
"You're not old enough, Ginny, now be quiet. All right, Percy,
you go first."
What looked like the oldest boy marched toward platforms nine
and ten. Harry watched, careful not to blink in case he missed it
-- but just as the boy reached the dividing barrier between the
two platforms, a large crowd of tourists came swarming in front
of him and by the time the last backpack had cleared away, the boy
had vanished.
"Fred, you next," the plump woman said.
"I'm not Fred, I'm George," said the boy. "Honestly, woman,
you call yourself our mother? CarA you tell I'm George?"
"Sorry, George, dear."
"Only joking, I am Fred," said the boy, and off he went. His
twin called after him to hurry up, and he must have done so,
because a second later, he had gone -- but how had he done it?
Now the third brother was walking briskly toward the barrier
he was almost there -- and then, quite suddenly, he wasn't anywhere.
There was nothing else for it.
"Excuse me," Harry said to the plump woman.
"Hello, dear," she said. "First time at Hogwarts? Ron's new,
too."
She pointed at the last and youngest of her sons. He was tall,
thin, and gangling, with freckles, big hands and feet, and a
long nose.
"Yes," said Harry. "The thing is -- the thing is, I don't know
how to --"
"How to get onto the platform?" she said kindly, and Harry
nodded.
"Not to worry," she said. "All you have to do is walk straight
at the barrier between platforms nine and ten. Don't stop and don't
be scared you'll crash into it, that's very important. Best do it
at a bit of a run if you're nervous. Go on, go now before Ron."
"Er -- okay," said Harry.
He pushed his trolley around and stared at the barrier. It
looked very solid.
He started to walk toward it. People jostled him on their way
to platforms nine and ten. Harry walked more quickly. He was going
to smash right into that barrier and then he'd be in trouble --
leaning forward on his cart, he broke into a heavy run -- the
barrier was coming nearer and nearer -- he wouldn't be able to stop
-- the cart was out of control -- he was a foot away -- he closed
his eyes ready for the crash --
It didn't come... he kept on running... he opened his eyes. A
scarlet steam engine was waiting next to a platform packed with
people. A sign overhead said Hogwarts Express, eleven O'clock. Harry
looked behind him and saw a wrought-iron archway where the barrier
had been, with the words Platform Nine and Three-Quarters on it,
He had done it.
Smoke from the engine drifted over the heads of the chattering
crowd, while cats of every color wound here and there between their
legs. Owls hooted to one another in a disgruntled sort of way over
the babble and the scraping of heavy trunks.
The first few carriages were already packed with students,
some hanging out of the window to talk to their families, some
fighting over seats. Harry pushed his cart off down the platform in
search of an empty seat. He passed a round-faced boy who was saying,
"Gran, I've lost my toad again."
"Oh, Neville," he heard the old woman sigh.
A boy with dreadlocks was surrounded by a small crowd.
"Give us a look, Lee, go on."
The boy lifted the lid of a box in his arms, and the people
around him shrieked and yelled as something inside poked out a long,
hairy leg.
Harry pressed on through the crowd until he found an empty
compartment near the end of the train. He put Hedwig inside first
and then started to shove and heave his trunk toward the train
door. He tried to lift it up the steps but could hardly raise one
end and twice he dropped it painfully on his foot.
"Want a hand?" It was one of the red-haired twins he'd followed
through the barrier.
"Yes, please," Harry panted.
"Oy, Fred! C'mere and help!"
With the twins' help, Harry's trunk was at last tucked away in
a corner of the compartment.
"Thanks," said Harry, pushing his sweaty hair out of his eyes.
"What's that?" said one of the twins suddenly, pointing at
Harry's lightning scar.
"Blimey," said the other twin. "Are you
"He is," said the first twin. "Aren't you?" he added to Harry.
"What?" said Harry.
"Harry Potter, "chorused the twins.
"Oh, him," said Harry. "I mean, yes, I am."
The two boys gawked at him, and Harry felt himself turning
red. Then, to his relief, a voice came floating in through the
train's open door.
"Fred? George? Are you there?"
"Coming, Mom."
With a last look at Harry, the twins hopped off the train.
Harry sat down next to the window where, half hidden, he could
watch the red-haired family on the platform and hear what they were
saying. Their mother had just taken out her handkerchief.
"Ron, you've got something on your nose."
The youngest boy tried to jerk out of the way, but she grabbed
him and began rubbing the end of his nose.
"Mom -- geroff" He wriggled free.
"Aaah, has ickle Ronnie got somefink on his nosie?" said one
of the twins.
"Shut up," said Ron.
"Where's Percy?" said their mother.
"He's coming now."
The oldest boy came striding into sight. He had already changed
into his billowing black Hogwarts robes, and Harry noticed a shiny
silver badge on his chest with the letter P on it.
"Can't stay long, Mother," he said. "I'm up front, the prefects
have got two compartments to themselves --"
"Oh, are you a prefect, Percy?" said one of the twins, with
an air of great surprise. "You should have said something, we had
no idea."
"Hang on, I think I remember him saying something about it,"
said the other twin. "Once --"
"Or twice --"
"A minute --"
"All summer --"
"Oh, shut up," said Percy the Prefect.
"How come Percy gets new robes, anyway?" said one of the twins.
"Because he's a prefect," said their mother fondly. "All right,
dear, well, have a good term -- send me an owl when you get there."
She kissed Percy on the cheek and he left. Then she turned to
the twins.
"Now, you two -- this year, you behave yourselves. If I get
one more owl telling me you've -- you've blown up a toilet or --"
"Blown up a toilet? We've never blown up a toilet."
"Great idea though, thanks, Mom."
"It's not funny. And look after Ron."
"Don't worry, ickle Ronniekins is safe with us."
"Shut up," said Ron again. He was almost as tall as the twins
already and his nose was still pink where his mother had rubbed it.
"Hey, Mom, guess what? Guess who we just met on the train?"
Harry leaned back quickly so they couldn't see him looking.
"You know that black-haired boy who was near us in the
station? Know who he is?"
"Who?"
"Harry Potter!"
Harry heard the little girl's voice.
"Oh, Mom, can I go on the train and see him, Mom, eh please...."
"You've already seen him, Ginny, and the poor boy isn't something
you goggle at in a zoo. Is he really, Fred? How do you know?"
"Asked him. Saw his scar. It's really there - like lightning."
"Poor dear - no wonder he was alone, I wondered. He was ever
so polite when he asked how to get onto the platform."
"Never mind that, do you think he remembers what You-Know-Who
looks like?"
Their mother suddenly became very stern.
"I forbid you to ask him, Fred. No, don't you dare. As though
he needs reminding of that on his first day at school."
"All right, keep your hair on."
A whistle sounded.
"Hurry up!" their mother said, and the three boys clambered
onto the train. They leaned out of the window for her to kiss them
good-bye, and their younger sister began to cry.
"Don't, Ginny, we'll send you loads of owls."
"We'll send you a Hogwarts toilet seat."
"George!"
"Only joking, Mom."
The train began to move. Harry saw the boys' mother waving and
their sister, half laughing, half crying, running to keep up with the
train until it gathered too much speed, then she fell back and waved.
Harry watched the girl and her mother disappear as the train
rounded the corner. Houses flashed past the window. Harry felt a
great leap of excitement. He didn't know what he was going to but
it had to be better than what he was leaving behind.
The door of the compartment slid open and the youngest redheaded
boy came in.
"Anyone sitting there?" he asked, pointing at the seat opposite
Harry. "Everywhere else is full."
Harry shook his head and the boy sat down. He glanced at Harry
and then looked quickly out of the window, pretending he hadn't
looked. Harry saw he still had a black mark on his nose.
"Hey, Ron."
The twins were back.
"Listen, we're going down the middle of the train -- Lee Jordan's
got a giant tarantula down there."
"Right," mumbled Ron.
"Harry," said the other twin, "did we introduce ourselves? Fred
and George Weasley. And this is Ron, our brother. See you later,
then.
"Bye," said Harry and Ron. The twins slid the compartment door
shut behind them.
"Are you really Harry Potter?" Ron blurted out.
Harry nodded.
"Oh -well, I thought it might be one of Fred and George's jokes,"
said Ron. "And have you really got -- you know..."
He pointed at Harry's forehead.
Harry pulled back his bangs to show the lightning scar. Ron
stared.
"So that's where You-Know-Who
"Yes," said Harry, "but I can't remember it."
"Nothing?" said Ron eagerly.
"Well -- I remember a lot of green light, but nothing else."
"Wow," said Ron. He sat and stared at Harry for a few moments,
then, as though he had suddenly realized what he was doing, he
looked quickly out of the window again.
"Are all your family wizards?" asked Harry, who found Ron just
as interesting as Ron found him.
"Er -- Yes, I think so," said Ron. "I think Mom's got a second
cousin who's an accountant, but we never talk about him."
"So you must know loads of magic already."
The Weasleys were clearly one of those old wizarding families
the pale boy in Diagon Alley had talked about.
"I heard you went to live with Muggles," said Ron. "What are
they like?"
"Horrible -well, not all of them. My aunt and uncle and cousin
are, though. Wish I'd had three wizard brothers."
"Five," said Ron. For some reason, he was looking gloomy. "I'm
the sixth in our family to go to Hogwarts. You could say I've got
a lot to live up to. Bill and Charlie have already left -- Bill
was head boy and Charlie was captain of Quidditch. Now Percy's
a prefect. Fred and George mess around a lot, but they still get
really good marks and everyone thinks they're really funny. Everyone
expects me to do as well as the others, but if I do, it's no big
deal, because they did it first. You never get anything new, either,
with five brothers. I've got Bill's old robes, Charlie's old wand,
and Percy's old rat."
Ron reached inside his jacket and pulled out a fat gray rat,
which was asleep.
"His name's Scabbers and he's useless, he hardly ever wakes
up. Percy got an owl from my dad for being made a prefect, but they
couldn't aff -- I mean, I got Scabbers instead."
Ron's ears went pink. He seemed to think he'd said too much,
because he went back to staring out of the window.
Harry didn't think there was anything wrong with not being
able to afford an owl. After all, he'd never had any money in his
life until a month ago, and he told Ron so, all about having to wear
Dudley's old clothes and never getting proper birthday presents. This
seemed to cheer Ron up.
"... and until Hagrid told me, I didn't know anything about be
ing a wizard or about my parents or Voldemort"
Ron gasped.
"What?" said Harry.
"You said You-Know-Who's name!" said Ron, sounding both shocked
and impressed. "I'd have thought you, of all people --"
"I'm not trying to be brave or anything, saying the name,"
said Harry, I just never knew you shouldn't. See what I mean? I've
got loads to learn.... I bet," he added, voicing for the first time
something that had been worrying him a lot lately, "I bet I'm the
worst in the class."
"You won't be. There's loads of people who come from Muggle
families and they learn quick enough."
While they had been talking, the train had carried them out
of London. Now they were speeding past fields full of cows and
sheep. They were quiet for a time, watching the fields and lanes
flick past.
Around half past twelve there was a great clattering outside
in the corridor and a smiling, dimpled woman slid back their door
and said, "Anything off the cart, dears?"
Harry, who hadn't had any breakfast, leapt to his feet,
but Ron's ears went pink again and he muttered that he'd brought
sandwiches. Harry went out into the corridor.
He had never had any money for candy with the Dursleys, and
now that he had pockets rattling with gold and silver he was ready
to buy as many Mars Bars as he could carry -- but the woman didn't
have Mars Bars. What she did have were Bettie Bott's Every Flavor
Beans, Drooble's Best Blowing Gum, Chocolate Frogs. Pumpkin Pasties,
Cauldron Cakes, Licorice Wands, and a number of other strange things
Harry had never seen in his life. Not wanting to miss anything,
he got some of everything and paid the woman eleven silver Sickles
and seven bronze Knuts.
Ron stared as Harry brought it all back in to the compartment
and tipped it onto an empty seat.
"Hungry, are you?"
"Starving," said Harry, taking a large bite out of a pumpkin
pasty.
Ron had taken out a lumpy package and unwrapped it. There
were four sandwiches inside. He pulled one of them apart and said,
"She always forgets I don't like corned beef."
"Swap you for one of these," said Harry, holding up a pasty. "Go
on --"
"You don't want this, it's all dry," said Ron. "She hasn't got
much time," he added quickly, "you know, with five of us."
"Go on, have a pasty," said Harry, who had never had anything
to share before or, indeed, anyone to share it with. It was a
nice feeling, sitting there with Ron, eating their way through all
Harry's pasties, cakes, and candies (the sandwiches lay forgotten).
"What are these?" Harry asked Ron, holding up a pack of Chocolate
Frogs. "They're not really frogs, are they?" He was starting to
feel that nothing would surprise him.
"No," said Ron. "But see what the card is. I'm missing Agrippa."
"What?"
"Oh, of course, you wouldn't know -- Chocolate Frogs have cards,
inside them, you know, to collect -- famous witches and wizards. I've
got about five hundred, but I haven't got Agrippa or Ptolemy."
Harry unwrapped his Chocolate Frog and picked up the card. It
showed a man's face. He wore half- moon glasses, had a long, crooked
nose, and flowing silver hair, beard, and mustache. Underneath the
picture was the name Albus Dumbledore.
"So this is Dumbledore!" said Harry.
"Don't tell me you'd never heard of Dumbledore!" said Ron. "Can
I have a frog? I might get Agrippa -- thanks
Harry turned over his card and read:
ALBUS DUMBLEDORE
CURRENTLY HEADMASTER OF HOGWARTS
Considered by many the greatest wizard of modern times,
Dumbledore is particularly famous for his defeat of the dark
wizard Grindelwald in 1945, for the discovery of the twelve uses of
dragon's blood, and his work on alchemy with his partner, Nicolas
Flamel. Professor Dumbledore enjoys chamber music and tenpin bowling.
Harry turned the card back over and saw, to his astonishment,
that Dumbledore's face had disappeared.
"He's gone!"
"Well, you can't expect him to hang around all day," said
Ron. "He'll be back. No, I've got Morgana again and I've got about
six of her... do you want it? You can start collecting."
Ron's eyes strayed to the pile of Chocolate Frogs waiting to
be unwrapped.
"Help yourself," said Harry. "But in, you know, the Muggle world,
people just stay put in photos."
"Do they? What, they don't move at all?" Ron sounded
amazed. "weird!"
Harry stared as Dumbledore sidled back into the picture on his
card and gave him a small smile. Ron was more interested in eating
the frogs than looking at the Famous Witches and Wizards cards,
but Harry couldn't keep his eyes off them. Soon he had not only
Dumbledore and Morgana, but Hengist of Woodcroft, Alberic Grunnion,
Circe, Paracelsus, and Merlin. He finally tore his eyes away from
the druidess Cliodna, who was scratching her nose, to open a bag
of Bertie Bott's Every Flavor Beans.
"You want to be careful with those," Ron warned Harry. "When
they say every flavor, they mean every flavor -- you know, you
get all the ordinary ones like chocolate and peppermint and mar-
malade, but then you can get spinach and liver and tripe. George
reckons he had a booger- flavored one once."
Ron picked up a green bean, looked at it carefully, and bit
into a corner.
"Bleaaargh -- see? Sprouts."
They had a good time eating the Every Flavor Beans. Harry
got toast, coconut, baked bean, strawberry, curry, grass, coffee,
sardine, and was even brave enough to nibble the end off a funny
gray one Ron wouldn't touch, which turned out to be pepper.
The countryside now flying past the window was becoming
wilder. The neat fields had gone. Now there were woods, twisting
rivers, and dark green hills.
There was a knock on the door of their compartment and the
round-faced boy Harry had passed on platform nine and threequarters
came in. He looked tearful.
"Sorry," he said, "but have you seen a toad at all?"
When they shook their heads, he wailed, "I've lost him! He
keeps getting away from me!"
"He'll turn up," said Harry.
"Yes," said the boy miserably. "Well, if you see him..."
He left.
"Don't know why he's so bothered," said Ron. "If I'd brought a
toad I'd lose it as quick as I could. Mind you, I brought Scabbers,
so I can't talk."
The rat was still snoozing on Ron's lap.
"He might have died and you wouldn't know the difference," said
Ron in disgust. "I tried to turn him yellow yesterday to make him
more interesting, but the spell didn't work. I'll show you, look..."
He rummaged around in his trunk and pulled out a very
battered-looking wand. It was chipped in places and something white
was glinting at the end.
"Unicorn hair's nearly poking out. Anyway
He had just raised his 'wand when the compartment door slid
open again. The toadless boy was back, but this time he had a girl
with him. She was already wearing her new Hogwarts robes.
"Has anyone seen a toad? Neville's lost one," she said. She had
a bossy sort of voice, lots of bushy brown hair, and rather large
front teeth.
"We've already told him we haven't seen it," said Ron, but the
girl wasn't listening, she was looking at the wand in his hand.
"Oh, are you doing magic? Let's see it, then."
She sat down. Ron looked taken aback.
"Er -- all right."
He cleared his throat.
"Sunshine, daisies, butter mellow, Turn this stupid, fat rat
yellow."
He waved his wand, but nothing happened. Scabbers stayed gray
and fast asleep.
"Are you sure that's a real spell?" said the girl. "Well,
it's not very good, is it? I've tried a few simple spells just
for practice and it's all worked for me. Nobody in my family's
magic at all, it was ever such a surprise when I got my letter,
but I was ever so pleased, of course, I mean, it's the very best
school of witchcraft there is, I've heard -- I've learned all our
course books by heart, of course, I just hope it will be enough --
I'm Hermione Granger, by the way, who are you.
She said all this very fast.
Harry looked at Ron, and was relieved to see by his stunned
face that he hadn't learned all the course books by heart either.
"I'm Ron Weasley," Ron muttered.
"Harry Potter," said Harry.
"Are you really?" said Hermione. "I know all about you, of course
-- I got a few extra books. for background reading, and you're in
Modern Magical History and The Rise and Fall of the Dark Arts and
Great Wizarding Events of the Twentieth Century.
"Am I?" said Harry, feeling dazed.
"Goodness, didn't you know, I'd have found out everything I
could if it was me," said Hermione. "Do either of you know what house
you'll be in? I've been asking around, and I hope I'm in Gryffindor,
it sounds by far the best; I hear Dumbledore himself was in it, but
I suppose Ravenclaw wouldn't be too bad.... Anyway, we'd better go
and look for Neville's toad. You two had better change, you know,
I expect we'll be there soon."
And she left, taking the toadless boy with her.
"Whatever house I'm in, I hope she's not in it," said Ron. He
threw his wand back into his trunk. "Stupid spell -- George gave
it to me, bet he knew it was a dud."
"What house are your brothers in?" asked Harry.
"Gryffindor," said Ron. Gloom seemed to be settling on him
again. "Mom and Dad were in it, too. I don't know what they'll say
if I'm not. I don't suppose Ravenclaw would be too bad, but imagine
if they put me in Slytherin."
"That's the house Vol-, I mean, You-Know-Who was in?"
"Yeah," said Ron. He flopped back into his seat, looking
depressed.
"You know, I think the ends of Scabbers' whiskers are a bit
lighter," said Harry, trying to take Ron's mind off houses. "So
what do your oldest brothers do now that they've left, anyway?"
Harry was wondering what a wizard did once he'd finished school.
"Charlie's in Romania studying dragons, and Bill's in Africa
doing something for Gringotts," said Ron. "Did you hear about
Gringotts? It's been all over the Daily Prophet, but I don't
suppose you get that with the Muggles -- someone tried to rob a
high security vault."
Harry stared.
"Really? What happened to them?"
"Nothing, that's why it's such big news. They haven't been
caught. My dad says it must've been a powerful Dark wizard to get
round Gringotts, but they don't think they took anything, that's
what's odd. 'Course, everyone gets scared when something like this
happens in case You-Know-Who's behind it."
Harry turned this news over in his mind. He was starting to
get a prickle of fear every time You- Know-Who was mentioned. He
supposed this was all part of entering the magical world, but it
had been a lot more comfortable saying "Voldemort" without worrying.
"What's your Quidditch team?" Ron asked.
"Er -- I don't know any," Harry confessed.
"What!" Ron looked dumbfounded. "Oh, you wait, it's the best game
in the world --" And he was off, explaining all about the four balls
and the positions of the seven players, describing famous games he'd
been to with his brothers and the broomstick he'd like to get if he
had the money. He was just taking Harry through the finer points
of the game when the compartment door slid open yet again, but it
wasn't Neville the toadless boy, or Hermione Granger this time.
Three boys entered, and Harry recognized the middle one at once:
it was the pale boy from Madam Malkin's robe shop. He was looking at
Harry with a lot more interest than he'd shown back in Diagon Alley.
"Is it true?" he said. "They're saying all down the train that
Harry Potter's in this compartment. So it's you, is it?"
"Yes," said Harry. He was looking at the other boys. Both of
them were thickset and looked extremely mean. Standing on either
side of the pale boy, they looked like bodyguards.
"Oh, this is Crabbe and this is Goyle," said the pale boy
carelessly, noticing where Harry was looking. "And my name's Malfoy,
Draco Malfoy."
Ron gave a slight cough, which might have been hiding a
snigget. Draco Malfoy looked at him.
"Think my name's funny, do you? No need to ask who you are. My
father told me all the Weasleys have red hair, freckles, and more
children than they can afford."
He turned back to Harry. "You'll soon find out some wizarding
families are much better than others, Potter. You don't want to go
making friends with the wrong sort. I can help you there."
He held out his hand to shake Harry's, but Harry didn't take it.
"I think I can tell who the wrong sort are for myself, thanks,"
he said coolly.
Draco Malfoy didn't go red, but a pink tinge appeared in his
pale cheeks.
"I'd be careful if I were you, Potter," he said slowly. "Unless
you're a bit politer you'll go the same way as your parents. They
didn't know what was good for them, either. You hang around with
riffraff like the Weasleys and that Hagrid, and it'll rub off
on you."
Both Harry and Ron stood up.
"Say that again," Ron said, his face as red as his hair.
"Oh, you're going to fight us, are you?" Malfoy sneered.
"Unless you get out now," said Harry, more bravely than he felt,
because Crabbe and Goyle were a lot bigger than him or Ron.
"But we don't feet like leaving, do we, boys? We've eaten all
our food and you still seem to have some."
Goyle reached toward the Chocolate Frogs next to Ron - Ron
leapt forward, but before he'd so much as touched Goyle, Goyle let
out a horrible yell.
Scabbers the rat was hanging off his finger, sharp little teeth
sunk deep into Goyle's knuckle - Crabbe and Malfoy backed away as
Goyle swung Scabbers round and round, howling, and when Scabbets
finally flew off and hit the window, all three of them disappeared
at once. Perhaps they thought there were more rats lurking among the
sweets, or perhaps they'd heard footsteps, because a second later,
Hermione Granger had come in.
"What has been going on?" she said, looking at the sweets all
over the floor and Ron picking up Scabbers by his tail.
I think he's been knocked out," Ron said to Harry. He looked
closer at Scabbers. "No -- I don't believe it -- he's gone back
to sleep-"
And so he had.
"You've met Malfoy before?"
Harry explained about their meeting in Diagon Alley.
"I've heard of his family," said Ron darkly. "They were
some of the first to come back to our side after You-Know-Who
disappeared. Said they'd been bewitched. My dad doesn't believe
it. He says Malfoy's father didn't need an excuse to go over to the
Dark Side." He turned to Hermione. "Can we help you with something?"
"You'd better hurry up and put your robes on, I've just been
up to the front to ask the conductor, and he says we're nearly
there. You haven't been fighting, have you? You'll be in trouble
before we even get there!"
"Scabbers has been fighting, not us," said Ron, scowling at
her. "Would you mind leaving while we change?"
"All right -- I only came in here because people outside are
behaving very childishly, racing up and down the corridors," said
Hermione in a sniffy voice. "And you've got dirt on your nose,
by the way, did you know?"
Ron glared at her as she left. Harry peered out of the window. It
was getting dark. He could see mountains and forests under a deep
purple sky. The train did seem to be slowing down.
He and Ron took off their jackets and pulled on their long black
robes. Ron's were a bit short for him, you could see his sneakers
underneath them.
A voice echoed through the train: "We will be reaching Hogwarts
in five minutes' time. Please leave your luggage on the train,
it will be taken to the school separately."
Harry's stomach lurched with nerves and Ron, he saw, looked
pale under his freckles. They crammed their pockets with the last
of the sweets and joined the crowd thronging the corridor.
The train slowed right down and finally stopped. People pushed
their way toward the door and out on to a tiny, dark platform. Harry
shivered in the cold night air. Then a lamp came bobbing over the
heads of the students, and Harry heard a familiar voice: "Firs'
years! Firs' years over here! All right there, Harry?"
Hagrid's big hairy face beamed over the sea of heads.
"C'mon, follow me -- any more firs' years? Mind yer step,
now! Firs' years follow me!"
Slipping and stumbling, they followed Hagrid down what seemed
to be a steep, narrow path. It was so dark on either side of them
that Harry thought there must be thick trees there. Nobody spoke
much. Neville, the boy who kept losing his toad, sniffed once
or twice.
"Ye' all get yer firs' sight o' Hogwarts in a sec," Hagrid
called over his shoulder, "jus' round this bend here."
There was a loud "Oooooh!"
The narrow path had opened suddenly onto the edge of a great
black take. Perched atop a high mountain on the other side, its
windows sparkling in the starry sky, was a vast castle with many
turrets and towers.
"No more'n four to a boat!" Hagrid called, pointing to a fleet
of little boats sitting in the water by the shore. Harry and Ron
were followed into their boat by Neville and Hermione. "Everyone
in?" shouted Hagrid, who had a boat to himself. "Right then --
FORWARD!"
And the fleet of little boats moved off all at once, gliding
across the lake, which was as smooth as glass. Everyone was silent,
staring up at the great castle overhead. It towered over them as
they sailed nearer and nearer to the cliff on which it stood.
"Heads down!" yelled Hagrid as the first boats reached the cliff;
they all bent their heads and the little boats carried them through a
curtain of ivy that hid a wide opening in the cliff face. They were
carried along a dark tunnel, which seemed to be taking them right
underneath the castle, until they reached a kind of underground
harbor, where they clambered out onto rocks and pebbles.
"Oy, you there! Is this your toad?" said Hagrid, who was checking
the boats as people climbed out of them.
"Trevor!" cried Neville blissfully, holding out his hands. Then
they clambered up a passageway in the rock after Hagrid's lamp,
coming out at last onto smooth, damp grass right in the shadow of
the castle.
They walked up a flight of stone steps and crowded around the
huge, Oak front door.
"Everyone here? You there, still got yer toad?"
Hagrid raised a gigantic fist and knocked three times on the
castle door.
CHAPTER SEVEN
THE SORTING HAT
The door swung open at once. A tall, black-haired witch in
emerald-green robes stood there. She had a very stern face and
Harry's first thought was that this was not someone to cross.
"The firs' years, Professor McGonagall," said Hagrid.
"Thank you, Hagrid. I will take them from here."
She pulled the door wide. The entrance hall was so big you
could have fit the whole of the Dursleys' house in it. The stone
walls were lit with flaming torches like the ones at Gringotts,
the ceiling was too high to make out, and a magnificent marble
staircase facing them led to the upper floors.
They followed Professor McGonagall across the flagged stone
floor. Harry could hear the drone of hundreds of voices from a
doorway to the right -the rest of the school must already be here
-- but Professor McGonagall showed the first years into a small,
empty chamber off the hall. They crowded in, standing rather closer
together than they would usually have done, peering about nervously.
"Welcome to Hogwarts," said Professor McGonagall. "The
start-of-term banquet will begin shortly, but before you take your
seats in the Great Hall, you will be sorted into your houses. The
Sorting is a very important ceremony because, while you are here,
your house will be something like your family within Hogwarts. You
will have classes with the rest of your house, sleep in your house
dormitory, and spend free time in your house common room.
"The four houses are called Gryffindor, Hufflepuff, Ravenclaw,
and Slytherin. Each house has its own noble history and each has
produced outstanding witches and wizards. While you are at Hogwarts,
your triumphs will earn your house points, while any rulebreaking
will lose house points. At the end of the year, the house with the
most points is awarded the house cup, a great honor. I hope each
of you will be a credit to whichever house becomes yours.
"The Sorting Ceremony will take place in a few minutes in front
of the rest of the school. I suggest you all smarten yourselves up
as much as you can while you are waiting."
Her eyes lingered for a moment on Neville's cloak, which was
fastened under his left ear, and on Ron's smudged nose. Harry
nervously tried to flatten his hair.
"I shall return when we are ready for you," said Professor
McGonagall. "Please wait quietly."
She left the chamber. Harry swallowed.
"How exactly do they sort us into houses?" he asked Ron.
"Some sort of test, I think. Fred said it hurts a lot, but I
think he was joking."
Harry's heart gave a horrible jolt. A test? In front of the whole
school? But he didn't know any magic yet -- what on earth would he
have to do? He hadn't expected something like this the moment they
arrived. He looked around anxiously and saw that everyone else
looked terrified, too. No one was talking much except Hermione
Granger, who was whispering very fast about all the spells she'd
learned and wondering which one she'd need. Harry tried hard not to
listen to her. He'd never been more nervous, never, not even when
he'd had to take a school report home to the Dursleys saying that
he'd somehow turned his teacher's wig blue. He kept his eyes fixed
on the door. Any second now, Professor McGonagall would come back
and lead him to his doom.
Then something happened that made him jump about a foot in the
air -- several people behind him screamed.
"What the --?"
He gasped. So did the people around him. About twenty ghosts
had just streamed through the back wall. Pearly-white and slightly
transparent, they glided across the room talking to one another and
hardly glancing at the first years. They seemed to be arguing. What
looked like a fat little monk was saying: "Forgive and forget,
I say, we ought to give him a second chance --"
"My dear Friar, haven't we given Peeves all the chances he
deserves? He gives us all a bad name and you know, he's not really
even a ghost -- I say, what are you all doing here?"
A ghost wearing a ruff and tights had suddenly noticed the
first years.
Nobody answered.
"New students!" said the Fat Friar, smiling around at
them. "About to be Sorted, I suppose?"
A few people nodded mutely.
"Hope to see you in Hufflepuff!" said the Friar. "My old house,
you know."
"Move along now," said a sharp voice. "The Sorting Ceremony's
about to start."
Professor McGonagall had returned. One by one, the ghosts
floated away through the opposite wall.
"Now, form a line," Professor McGonagall told the first years,
"and follow me."
Feeling oddly as though his legs had turned to lead, Harry got
into line behind a boy with sandy hair, with Ron behind him, and
they walked out of the chamber, back across the hall, and through
a pair of double doors into the Great Hall.
Harry had never even imagined such a strange and splendid
place. It was lit by thousands and thousands of candles that
were floating in midair over four long tables, where the rest of
the students were sitting. These tables were laid with glittering
golden plates and goblets. At the top of the hall was another long
table where the teachers were sitting. Professor McGonagall led
the first years up here, so that they came to a halt in a line
facing the other students, with the teachers behind them. The
hundreds of faces staring at them looked like pale lanterns in the
flickering candlelight. Dotted here and there among the students,
the ghosts shone misty silver. Mainly to avoid all the staring eyes,
Harry looked upward and saw a velvety black ceiling dotted with
stars. He heard
Hermione whisper, "Its bewitched to look like the sky outside. I
read about it in Hogwarts, A History."
It was hard to believe there was a ceiling there at all, and
that the Great Hall didn't simply open on to the heavens.
Harry quickly looked down again as Professor McGonagall silently
placed a four-legged stool in front of the first years. On top of the
stool she put a pointed wizard's hat. This hat was patched and frayed
and extremely dirty. Aunt Petunia wouldn't have let it in the house.
Maybe they had to try and get a rabbit out of it, Harry thought
wildly, that seemed the sort of thing -- noticing that everyone in
the hall was now staring at the hat, he stared at it, too. For a few
seconds, there was complete silence. Then the hat twitched. A rip
near the brim opened wide like a mouth -- and the hat began to sing:
"Oh, you may not think I'm pretty,
But don't judge on what you see,
I'll eat myself if you can find
A smarter hat than me.
You can keep your bowlers black,
Your top hats sleek and tall,
For I'm the Hogwarts Sorting Hat
And I can cap them all.
There's nothing hidden in your head
The Sorting Hat can't see,
So try me on and I will tell you
Where you ought to be.
You might belong in Gryffindor,
Where dwell the brave at heart,
Their daring, nerve, and chivalry Set Gryffindors apart;
You might belong in Hufflepuff,
Where they are just and loyal,
Those patient Hufflepuffis are true And unafraid of toil;
Or yet in wise old Ravenclaw,
if you've a ready mind,
Where those of wit and learning,
Will always find their kind;
Or perhaps in Slytherin
You'll make your real friends,
Those cunning folk use any means
To achieve their ends.
So put me on! Don't be afraid!
And don't get in a flap!
You're in safe hands (though I have none)
For I'm a Thinking Cap!"
The whole hall burst into applause as the hat finished its
song. It bowed to each of the four tables and then became quite
still again.
"So we've just got to try on the hat!" Ron whispered to
Harry. "I'll kill Fred, he was going on about wrestling a troll."
Harry. smiled weakly. Yes, trying on the hat was a lot better
than having to do a spell, but he did wish they could have tried it
on without everyone watching. The hat seemed to be asking rather
alot; Harry didn't feel brave or quick-witted or any of it at the
moment. If only the hat had mentioned a house for people who felt
a bit queasy, that would have been the one for him.
Professor McGonagall now stepped forward holding a long roll
of parchment.
"When I call your name, you will put on the hat and sit on the
stool to be sorted," she said. "Abbott, Hannah!"
A pink-faced girl with blonde pigtails stumbled out of line,
put on the hat, which fell right down over her eyes, and sat down. A
moments pause --
"HUFFLEPUFF!" shouted the hat.
The table on the right cheered and clapped as Hannah went to
sit down at the Hufflepuff table. Harry saw the ghost of the Fat
Friar waving merrily at her.
"Bones, Susan!"
"HUFFLEPUFF!" shouted the hat again, and Susan scuttled off to
sit next to Hannah.
"Boot, Terry!"
"RAVENCLAW!"
The table second from the left clapped this time; several
Ravenclaws stood up to shake hands with Terry as he joined them.
" Brocklehurst, Mandy" went to Ravenclaw too, but "Brown,
Lavender" became the first new Gryffindor, and the table on the
far left exploded with cheers; Harry could see Ron's twin brothers
catcalling.
"Bulstrode, Millicent" then became a Slytherin. Perhaps it
was Harry's imagination, after all he'd heard about Slytherin,
but he thought they looked like an unpleasant lot. He was starting
to feel definitely sick now. He remembered being picked for teams
during gym at his old school. He had always been last to be chosen,
not because he was no good, but because no one wanted Dudley to
think they liked him.
"Finch-Fletchley, Justin!"
"HUFFLEPUFF!"
Sometimes, Harry noticed, the hat shouted out the house at once,
but at others it took a little while to decide. "Finnigan, Seamus,"
the sandy-haired boy next to Harry in the line, sat on the stool
for almost a whole minute before the hat declared him a Gryffindor.
"Granger, Hermione!"
Hermione almost ran to the stool and jammed the hat eagerly on
her head.
"GRYFFINDOR!" shouted the hat. Ron groaned.
A horrible thought struck Harry, as horrible thoughts always
do when you're very nervous. What if he wasn't chosen at all? What
if he just sat there with the hat over his eyes for ages, until
Professor McGonagall jerked it off his head and said there had
obviously been a mistake and he'd better get back on the train?
When Neville Longbottom, the boy who kept losing his toad, was
called, he fell over on his way to the stool. The hat took a long
time to decide with Neville. When it finally shouted, "GRYFFINDOR,"
Neville ran off still wearing it, and had to jog back amid gales
of laughter to give it to "MacDougal, Morag."
Malfoy swaggered forward when his name was called and got his
wish at once: the hat had barely touched his head when it screamed,
"SLYTHERIN!"
Malfoy went to join his friends Crabbe and Goyle, looking
pleased with himself.
There weren't many people left now. "Moon" "Nott" "Parkinson"
then a pair of twin girls, "Patil" and "Patil" then "Perks,
Sally-Anne" and then, at last -- "Potter, Harry!"
As Harry stepped forward, whispers suddenly broke out like
little hissing fires all over the hall.
"Potter, did she say?"
The Harry Potter?"
The last thing Harry saw before the hat dropped over his eyes
was the hall full of people craning to get a good look at him. Next
second he was looking at the black inside of the hat. He waited.
Hmm," said a small voice in his ear. "Difficult. Very
difficult. Plenty of courage, I see. Not a bad mind either. There's
talent, A my goodness, yes -- and a nice thirst to prove yourself,
now that's interesting.... So where shall I put you?"
Harry gripped the edges of the stool and thought, Not Slytherin,
not Slytherin.
"Not Slytherin, eh?" said the small voice. "Are you sure? You
could be great, you know, it's all here in your head, and Slytherin
will help you on the way to greatness, no doubt about that --
no? Well, if you're sure -- better be GRYFFINDOR!"
Harry heard the hat shout the last word to the whole hall. He
took off the hat and walked shakily toward the Gryffindor table. He
was so relieved to have been chosen and not put in Slytherin, he
hardly noticed that he was getting the loudest cheer yet. Percy
the Prefect got up and shook his hand vigorously, while the Weasley
twins yelled, "We got Potter! We got Potter!" Harry sat down opposite
the ghost in the ruff he'd seen earlier. The ghost patted his arm,
giving Harry the sudden, horrible feeling he'd just plunged it into
a bucket of ice-cold water.
He could see the High Table properly now. At the end nearest him
sat Hagrid, who caught his eye and gave him the thumbs up. Harry
grinned back. And there, in the center of the High Table, in a
large gold chair, sat Albus Dumbledore. Harry recognized him at
once from the card he'd gotten out of the Chocolate Frog on the
train. Dumbledore's silver hair was the only thing in the whole
hall that shone as brightly as the ghosts. Harry spotted Professor
Quirtell, too, the nervous young man from the Leaky Cauldron. He
was looking very peculiar in a large purple turban.
And now there were only three people left to be sorted. "Thomas,
Dean," a Black boy even taller than Ron, joined Harry at the
Gryffindor table. "Turpin, Lisa," became a Ravenclaw and then it
was Ron's turn. He was pale green by now. Harry crossed his fingers
under the table and a second later the hat had shouted, "GRYFFINDOR!"
Harry clapped loudly with the rest as Ron collapsed into the
chair next to him.
"Well done, Ron, excellent," said Percy Weasley Pompously
across Harry as "Zabini, Blaise," was made a Slytherin. Professor
McGonagall rolled up her scroll and took the Sorting Hat away.
Harry looked down at his empty gold plate. He had only just
realized how hungry he was. The pumpkin pasties seemed ages ago.
Albus Dumbledore had gotten to his feet. He was beaming at the
students, his arms opened wide, as if nothing could have pleased
him more than to see them all there.
"Welcome," he said. "Welcome to a new year at Hogwarts! Before
we begin our banquet, I would like to say a few words. And here
they are: Nitwit! Blubber! Oddment! Tweak!
"Thank you!"
He sat back down. Everybody clapped and cheered. Harry didn't
know whether to laugh or not.
"Is he -- a bit mad?" he asked Percy uncertainly.
"Mad?" said Percy airily. "He's a genius! Best wizard in the
world! But he is a bit mad, yes. Potatoes, Harry?"
Harry's mouth fell open. The dishes in front of him were now
piled with food. He had never seen so many things he liked to eat
on one table: roast beef, roast chicken, pork chops and lamb chops,
sausages, bacon and steak, boiled potatoes, roast potatoes, fries,
Yorkshire pudding, peas, carrots, gravy, ketchup, and, for some
strange reason, peppermint humbugs.
The Dursleys had never exactly starved Harry, but he'd never
been allowed to eat as much as he liked. Dudley had always taken
anything that Harry really wanted, even if It made him sick. Harry
piled his plate with a bit of everything except the peppermints
and began to eat. It was all delicious.
"That does look good," said the ghost in the ruff sadly,
watching Harry cut up his steak,
"Can't you --?"
I haven't eaten for nearly four hundred years," said the
ghost. "I don't need to, of course, but one does miss it. I don't
think I've in troduced myself? Sir Nicholas de Mimsy-Porpington at
your service. Resident ghost of Gryffindor Tower."
"I know who you are!" said Ron suddenly. "My brothers told me
about you -- you're Nearly Headless Nick!"
"I would prefer you to call me Sir Nicholas de Mimsy --" the
ghost began stiffly, but sandy-haired Seamus Finnigan interrupted.
"Nearly Headless? How can you be nearly headless?"
Sir Nicholas looked extremely miffed, as if their little chat
wasn't going at all the way he wanted.
"Like this," he said irritably. He seized his left ear and
pulled. His whole head swung off his neck and fell onto his shoulder
as if it was on a hinge. Someone had obviously tried to behead him,
but not done it properly. Looking pleased at the stunned looks on
their faces, Nearly Headless Nick flipped his head back onto his
neck, coughed, and said, "So -- new Gryffindors! I hope you're going
to help us win the house championship this year? Gryffindors have
never gone so long without winning. Slytherins have got the cup six
years in a row! The Bloody Baron's becoming almost unbearable --
he's the Slytherin ghost."
Harry looked over at the Slytherin table and saw a horrible
ghost sitting there, with blank staring eyes, a gaunt face, and
robes stained with silver blood. He was right next to Malfoy who,
Harry was pleased to see, didn't look too pleased with the seating
arrangements.
"How did he get covered in blood?" asked Seamus with great
interest.
"I've never asked," said Nearly Headless Nick delicately.
When everyone had eaten as much as they could, the remains of
the food faded from the plates, leaving them sparkling clean as
before. A moment later the desserts appeared. Blocks of ice cream
in every flavor you could think of, apple pies, treacle tarts,
chocolate eclairs and jam doughnuts, trifle, strawberries, Jell-O,
rice pudding -- "
As Harry helped himself to a treacle tart, the talk turned to
their families.
"I'm half-and-half," said Seamus. "Me dad's a Muggle. Mom
didn't tell him she was a witch 'til after they were married. Bit
of a nasty shock for him."
The others laughed.
"What about you, Neville?" said Ron.
"Well, my gran brought me up and she's a witch," said Neville,
"but the family thought I was all- Muggle for ages. My Great Uncle
Algie kept trying to catch me off my guard and force some magic out
of me -- he pushed me off the end of Blackpool pier once, I nearly
drowned -- but nothing happened until I was eight. Great Uncle Algie
came round for dinner, and he was hanging me out of an upstairs
window by the ankles when my Great Auntie Enid offered him a meringue
and he accidentally let go. But I bounced -- all the way down the
garden and into the road. They were all really pleased, Gran was
crying, she was so happy. And you should have seen their faces when
I got in here -- they thought I might not be magic enough to come,
you see. Great Uncle Algie was so pleased he bought me my toad."
On Harry's other side, Percy Weasley and Hermione were talking
about lessons ("I do hope they start right away, there's so much
to learn, I'm particularly interested in Transfiguration, you know,
turning something into something else, of course, it's supposed to
be very difficult-"; "You'll be starting small, just matches into
needles and that sort of thing -- ").
Harry, who was starting to feel warm and sleepy, looked up at
the High Table again. Hagrid was drinking deeply from
his goblet. Professor McGonagall was talking to Professor
Dumbledore. Professor Quirrell, in his absurd turban, was talking
to a teacher with greasy black hair, a hooked nose, and sallow skin.
It happened very suddenly. The hook-nosed teacher looked past
Quirrell's turban straight into Harry's eyes -- and a sharp, hot
pain shot across the scar on Harry's forehead.
"Ouch!" Harry clapped a hand to his head.
"What is it?" asked Percy.
"N-nothing."
The pain had gone as quickly as it had come. Harder to shake
off was the feeling Harry had gotten from the teacher's look --
a feeling that he didn't like Harry at all.
"Who's that teacher talking to Professor Quirrell?" he asked
Percy.
"Oh, you know Quirrell already, do you? No wonder he's looking so
nervous, that's Professor Snape. He teaches Potions, but he doesn't
want to -- everyone knows he's after Quirrell's job. Knows an awful
lot about the Dark Arts, Snape."
Harry watched Snape for a while, but Snape didn't look at
him again.
At last, the desserts too disappeared, and Professor Dumbledore
got to his feet again. The hall fell silent.
"Ahern -- just a few more words now that we are all fed and
watered. I have a few start-of-term notices to give you.
"First years should note that the forest on the grounds is
forbidden to all pupils. And a few of our older students would do
well to remember that as well."
Dumbledore's twinkling eyes flashed in the direction of the
Weasley twins.
"I have also been asked by Mr. Filch, the caretaker, to
remind you all that no magic should be used between classes in
the corridors.
"Quidditch trials will be held in the second week of the
term. Anyone interested in playing for their house teams should
contact Madam Hooch.
"And finally, I must tell you that this year, the third-floor
corridor on the right-hand side is out of bounds to everyone who
does not wish to die a very painful death."
Harry laughed, but he was one of the few who did.
"He's not serious?" he muttered to Percy.
"Must be," said Percy, frowning at Dumbledore. "It's odd,
because he usually gives us a reason why we're not allowed to go
somewhere -- the forest's full of dangerous beasts, everyone knows
that. I do think he might have told us prefects, at least."
"And now, before we go to bed, let us sing the school
song!" cried Dumbledore. Harry noticed that the other teachers'
smiles had become rather fixed.
Dumbledore gave his wand a little flick, as if he was trying to
get a fly off the end, and a long golden ribbon flew out of it, which
rose high above the tables and twisted itself, snakelike, into words.
"Everyone pick their favorite tune," said Dumbledore, "and off
we go!" And the school bellowed:
"Hogwarts, Hogwarts, Hoggy Warty Hogwarts,
Teach us something please,
Whether we be old and bald
Or young with scabby knees,
Our heads could do with filling
With some interesting stuff,
For now they're bare and full of air,
Dead flies and bits of fluff,
So teach us things worth knowing,
Bring back what we've forgot,
just do your best, we'll do the rest,
And learn until our brains all rot.
Everybody finished the song at different times. At last, only
the Weasley twins were left singing along to a very slow funeral
march. Dumbledore conducted their last few lines with his wand and
when they had finished, he was one of those who clapped loudest.
"Ah, music," he said, wiping his eyes. "A magic beyond all we
do here! And now, bedtime. Off you trot!"
The Gryffindor first years followed Percy through the chattering
crowds, out of the Great Hall, and up the marble staircase. Harry's
legs were like lead again, but only because he was so tired and
full of food. He was too sleepy even to be surprised that the people
in the portraits along the corridors whispered and pointed as they
passed, or that twice Percy led them through doorways hidden behind
sliding panels and hanging tapestries. They climbed more staircases,
yawning and dragging their feet, and Harry was just wondering how
much farther they had to go when they came to a sudden halt.
A bundle of walking sticks was floating in midair ahead of them,
and as Percy took a step toward them they started throwing themselves
at him.
"Peeves," Percy whispered to the first years. "A poltergeist." He
raised his voice, "Peeves -- show yourself"
A loud, rude sound, like the air being let out of a balloon,
answered.
"Do you want me to go to the Bloody Baron?"
There was a pop, and a little man with wicked, dark eyes and a
wide mouth appeared, floating cross- legged in the air, clutching
the walking sticks.
"Oooooooh!" he said, with an evil cackle. "Ickle Firsties! What
fun!"
He swooped suddenly at them. They all ducked.
"Go away, Peeves, or the Baron'll hear about this, I mean
it!" barked Percy.
Peeves stuck out his tongue and vanished, dropping the walking
sticks on Neville's head. They heard him zooming away, rattling
coats of armor as he passed.
"You want to watch out for Peeves," said Percy, as they set
off again. "The Bloody Baron's the only one who can control him,
he won't even listen to us prefects. Here we are."
At the very end of the corridor hung a portrait of a very fat
woman in a pink silk dress.
"Password?" she said. "Caput Draconis," said Percy, and the
portrait swung forward to reveal a round hole in the wall. They
all scrambled through it -- Neville needed a leg up -- and found
themselves in the Gryffindor common room, a cozy, round room full
of squashy armchairs.
Percy directed the girls through one door to their dormitory
and the boys through another. At the top of a spiral staircase --
they were obviously in one of the towers -- they found their beds at
last: five four-posters hung with deep red, velvet curtains. Their
trunks had already been brought up. Too tired to talk much, they
pulled on their pajamas and fell into bed.
" Great food, isn't it?" Ron muttered to Harry through the
hangings. "Get off, Scabbers! He's chewing my sheets."
Harry was going to ask Ron if he'd had any of the treacle tart,
but he fell asleep almost at once.
Perhaps Harry had eaten a bit too much, because he had a very
strange dream. He was wearing Professor Quirrell's turban, which
kept talking to him, telling him he must transfer to Slytherin at
once, because it was his destiny. Harry told the turban he didn't
want to be in Slytherin; it got heavier and heavier; he tried to
pull it off but it tightened painfully -- and there was Malfoy,
laughing at him as he struggled with it -then Malfoy turned into the
hook-nosed teacher, Snape, whose laugh became high and cold -- there
was a burst of green light and Harry woke, sweating and shaking.
He rolled over and fell asleep again, and when he woke next day,
he didn't remember the dream at all.
CHAPTER EIGHT
THE POTIONS MASTER
There, look."
"Where?"
"Next to the tall kid with the red hair."
"Wearing the glasses?"
"Did you see his face?"
"Did you see his scar?"
Whispers followed Harry from the moment he left his dormitory
the next day. People lining up outside classrooms stood on tiptoe
to get a look at him, or doubled back to pass him in the corridors
again, staring. Harry wished they wouldn't, because he was trying
to concentrate on finding his way to classes.
There were a hundred and forty-two staircases at Hogwarts:
wide, sweeping ones; narrow, rickety ones; some that led somewhere
different on a Friday; some with a vanishing step halfway up that
you had to remember to jump. Then there were doors that wouldn't
open unless you asked politely, or tickled them in exactly the right
place, and doors that weren't really doors at all, but solid walls
just pretending. It was also very hard to remember where anything
was, because it all seemed to move around a lot. The people in the
portraits kept going to visit each other, and Harry was sure the
coats of armor could walk.
The ghosts didn't help, either. It was always a nasty shock
when one of them glided suddenly through a door you were trying to
open. Nearly Headless Nick was always happy to point new Gryffindors
in the right direction, but Peeves the Poltergeist was worth two
locked doors and a trick staircase if you met him when you were
late for class. He would drop wastepaper baskets on your head, pull
rugs from under your feet, pelt you with bits of chalk, or sneak up
behind you, invisible, grab your nose, and screech, "GOT YOUR CONK!"
Even worse than Peeves, if that was possible, was the caretaker,
Argus Filch. Harry and Ron managed to get on the wrong side of him on
their very first morning. Filch found them trying to force their way
through a door that unluckily turned out to be the entrance to the
out-of-bounds corridor on the third floor. He wouldn't believe they
were lost, was sure they were trying to break into it on purpose,
and was threatening to lock them in the dungeons when they were
rescued by Professor Quirrell, who was passing.
Filch owned a cat called Mrs. Norris, a scrawny, dust-colored
creature with bulging, lamp like eyes just like Filch's. She
patrolled the corridors alone. Break a rule in front of her, put just
one toe out of line, and she'd whisk off for Filch, who'd appear,
wheezing, two seconds later. Filch knew the secret passageways of
the school better than anyone (except perhaps the Weasley twins)
and could pop up as suddenly as any of the ghosts. The students
all hated him, and it was the dearest ambition of many to give
Mrs. Norris a good kick.
And then, once you had managed to find them, there were the
classes themselves. There was a lot more to magic, as Harry quickly
found out, than waving your wand and saying a few funny words.
They had to study the night skies through their telescopes every
Wednesday at midnight and learn the names of different stars and
the movements of the planets. Three times a week they went out to
the greenhouses behind the castle to study Herbology, with a dumpy
little witch called Professor Sprout, where they learned how to
take care of all the strange plants and fungi, and found out what
they were used for.
Easily the most boring class was History of Magic, which was
the only one taught by a ghost. Professor Binns had been very old
indeed when he had fallen asleep in front of the staff room
fire and got up next morning to teach, leaving his body behind
him. Binns droned on and on while they scribbled down names and
dates, and got Emetic the Evil and Uric the Oddball mixed up.
Professor Flitwick, the Charms teacher, was a tiny little wizard
who had to stand on a pile of books to see over his desk. At the
start of their first class he took the roll call, and when he reached
Harry's name he gave an excited squeak and toppled out of sight.
Professor McGonagall was again different. Harry had been quite
right to think she wasn't a teacher to cross. Strict and clever, she
gave them a talking-to the moment they sat down in her first class.
"Transfiguration is some of the most complex and dangerous magic
you will learn at Hogwarts," she said. "Anyone messing around in
my class will leave and not come back. You have been warned."
Then she changed her desk into a pig and back again. They
were all very impressed and couldn't wait to get started, but
soon realized they weren't going to be changing the furniture into
animals for a long time. After taking a lot of complicated notes,
they were each given a match and started trying to turn it into a
needle. By the end of the lesson, only Hermione Granger had made
any difference to her match; Professor McGonagall showed the class
how it had gone all silver and pointy and gave Hermione a rare smile.
The class everyone had really been looking forward to was
Defense Against the Dark Arts, but Quirrell's lessons turned out to
be a bit of a joke. His classroom smelled strongly of garlic, which
everyone said was to ward off a vampire he'd met in Romania and
was afraid would be coming back to get him one of these days. His
turban, he told them, had been given to him by an African prince
as a thank-you for getting rid of a troublesome zombie, but they
weren't sure they believed this story. For one thing, when Seamus
Finnigan asked eagerly to hear how Quirrell had fought off the
zombie, Quirrell went pink and started talking about the weather;
for another, they had noticed that a funny smell hung around the
turban, and the Weasley twins insisted that it was stuffed full of
garlic as well, so that Quirrell was protected wherever he went.
Harry was very relieved to find out that he wasn't miles behind
everyone else. Lots of people had come from Muggle families and, like
him, hadn't had any idea that they were witches and wizards. There
was so much to learn that even people like Ron didn't have much of
a head start.
Friday was an important day for Harry and Ron. They finally
managed to find their way down to the Great Hall for breakfast
without getting lost once.
"What have we got today?" Harry asked Ron as he poured sugar
on his porridge.
"Double Potions with the Slytherins," said Ron. "Snape's Head
of Slytherin House. They say he always favors them -- we'll be able
to see if it's true."
"Wish McGonagall favored us, " said Harry. Professor McGonagall
was head of Gryffindor House, but it hadn't stopped her from giving
them a huge pile of homework the day before.
Just then, the mail arrived. Harry had gotten used to this by
now, but it had given him a bit of a shock on the first morning,
when about a hundred owls had suddenly streamed into the Great Hall
during breakfast, circling the tables until they saw their owners,
and dropping letters and packages onto their laps.
Hedwig hadn't brought Harry anything so far. She sometimes
flew in to nibble his ear and have a bit of toast before going off
to sleep in the owlery with the other school owls. This morning,
however, she fluttered down between the marmalade and the sugar
bowl and dropped a note onto Harry's plate. Harry tore it open at
once. It said, in a very untidy scrawl:
Dear Harry,
I know you get Friday afternoons off, so would you like to come
and have a cup of tea with me around three?
I want to hear all about your first week. Send us an answer
back with Hedwig.
Hagrid
Harry borrowed Ron's quill, scribbled Yes, please, see you
later on the back of the note, and sent Hedwig off again.
It was lucky that Harry had tea with Hagrid to look forward to,
because the Potions lesson turned out to be the worst thing that
had happened to him so far.
At the start-of-term banquet, Harry had gotten the idea that
Professor Snape disliked him. By the end of the first Potions lesson,
he knew he'd been wrong. Snape didn't dislike Harry -- he hated him.
Potions lessons took place down in one of the dungeons. It was
colder here than up in the main castle, and would have been quite
creepy enough without the pickled animals floating in glass jars
all around the walls.
Snape, like Flitwick, started the class by taking the roll call,
and like Flitwick, he paused at Harry's name.
"Ah, Yes," he said softly, "Harry Potter. Our new -- celebrity."
Draco Malfoy and his friends Crabbe and Goyle sniggered behind
their hands. Snape finished calling the names and looked up at
the class. His eyes were black like Hagrid's, but they had none
of Hagrid's warmth. They were cold and empty and made you think of
dark tunnels.
"You are here to learn the subtle science and exact art of
potionmaking," he began. He spoke in barely more than a whisper,
but they caught every word -- like Professor McGonagall, Snape had
y caught every word -- like Professor McGonagall, Snape had the
gift of keeping a class silent without effort. "As there is little
foolish wand-waving here, many of you will hardly believe this is
magic. I don't expect you will really understand the beauty of the
softly simmering cauldron with its shimmering fumes, the delicate
power of liquids that creep through human veins, bewitching the
mind, ensnaring the senses.... I can teach you how to bottle fame,
brew glory, even stopper death -- if you aren't as big a bunch of
dunderheads as I usually have to teach."
More silence followed this little speech. Harry and Ron exchanged
looks with raised eyebrows. Hermione Granger was on the edge of
her seat and looked desperate to start proving that she wasn't
a dunderhead.
"Potter!" said Snape suddenly. "What would I get if I added
powdered root of asphodel to an infusion of wormwood?"
Powdered root of what to an infusion of what? Harry glanced at
Ron, who looked as stumped as he was; Hermione's hand had shot into
the air.
"I don't know, sit," said Harry.
Snape's lips curled into a sneer.
"Tut, tut -- fame clearly isn't everything."
He ignored Hermione's hand.
"Let's try again. Potter, where would you look if I told you
to find me a bezoar?"
Hermione stretched her hand as high into the air as it would go
without her leaving her seat, but Harry didn't have the faintest
idea what a bezoar was. He tried not to look at Malfoy, Crabbe,
and Goyle, who were shaking with laughter.
"I don't know, sit." "Thought you wouldn't open a book before
coming, eh, Potter?" Harry forced himself to keep looking straight
into those cold eyes. He had looked through his books at the
Dursleys', but did Snape expect him to remember everything in One
Thousand Magical Herbs and Fungi?
Snape was still ignoring Hermione's quivering hand.
"What is the difference, Potter, between monkshood and
wolfsbane?"
At this, Hermione stood up, her hand stretching toward the
dungeon ceiling.
"I don't know," said Harry quietly. "I think Hermione does,
though, why don't you try her?"
A few people laughed; Harry caught Seamus's eye, and Seamus
winked. Snape, however, was not pleased.
"Sit down," he snapped at Hermione. "For your information,
Potter, asphodel and wormwood make a sleeping potion so powerful it
is known as the Draught of Living Death. A bezoar is a stone taken
from the stomach of a goat and it will save you from most poisons. As
for monkshood and wolfsbane, they are the same plant, which also goes
by the name of aconite. Well? Why aren't you all copying that down?"
There was a sudden rummaging for quills and parchment. Over
the noise, Snape said, "And a point will be taken from Gryffindor
House for your cheek, Potter."
Things didn't improve for the Gryffindors as the Potions lesson
continued. Snape put them all into pairs and set them to mixing up a
simple potion to cure boils. He swept around in his long black cloak,
watching them weigh dried nettles and crush snake fangs, criticizing
almost everyone except Malfoy, whom he seemed to like. He was just
telling everyone to look at the perfect way Malfoy had stewed his
horned slugs when clouds of acid green smoke and a loud hissing
filled the dungeon. Neville had somehow managed to melt Seamus's
cauldron into a twisted blob, and their potion was seeping across
the stone floor, burning holes in people's shoes. Within seconds,
the whole class was standing on their stools while Neville, who had
been drenched in the potion when the cauldron collapsed, moaned in
pain as angry red boils sprang up all over his arms and legs.
"Idiot boy!" snarled Snape, clearing the spilled potion away
with one wave of his wand. "I suppose you added the porcupine quills
before taking the cauldron off the fire?"
Neville whimpered as boils started to pop up all over his nose.
"Take him up to the hospital wing," Snape spat at Seamus. Then
he rounded on Harry and Ron, who had been working next to Neville.
"You -- Potter -- why didn't you tell him not to add the
quills? Thought he'd make you look good if he got it wrong, did
you? That's another point you've lost for Gryffindor."
This was so unfair that Harry opened his mouth to argue, but
Ron kicked him behind their cauldron.
"Doi* push it," he muttered, "I've heard Snape can turn very
nasty."
As they climbed the steps out of the dungeon an hour later,
Harry's mind was racing and his spirits were low. He'd lost two
points for Gryffindor in his very first week -- why did Snape hate
him so much? "Cheer up," said Ron, "Snape's always taking points
off Fred and George. Can I come and meet Hagrid with you?"
At five to three they left the castle and made their way across
the grounds. Hagrid lived in a small wooden house on the edge of
the forbidden forest. A crossbow and a pair of galoshes were outside
the front door.
When Harry knocked they heard a frantic scrabbling from inside
and several booming barks. Then Hagrid's voice rang out, saying,
"Back, Fang -- back."
Hagrid's big, hairy face appeared in the crack as he pulled
the door open.
"Hang on," he said. "Back, Fang."
He let them in, struggling to keep a hold on the collar of an
enormous black boarhound.
There was only one room inside. Hams and pheasants were hanging
from the ceiling, a copper kettle was boiling on the open fire,
and in the corner stood a massive bed with a patchwork quilt over it.
"Make yerselves at home," said Hagrid, letting go of Fang, who
bounded straight at Ron and started licking his ears. Like Hagrid,
Fang was clearly not as fierce as he looked.
"This is Ron," Harry told Hagrid, who was pouring boiling water
into a large teapot and putting rock cakes onto a plate.
"Another Weasley, eh?" said Hagrid, glancing at Ron's freckles. I
spent half me life chasin' yer twin brothers away from the forest."
The rock cakes were shapeless lumps with raisins that almost
broke their teeth, but Harry and Ron pretended to be enjoying them
as they told Hagrid all about their first -lessons. Fang rested
his head on Harry's knee and drooled all over his robes.
Harry and Ron were delighted to hear Hagrid call Fitch "that
old git."
"An' as fer that cat, Mrs. Norris, I'd like ter introduce her
to Fang sometime. D'yeh know, every time I go up ter the school,
she follows me everywhere? Can't get rid of her -- Fitch puts her
up to it."
Harry told Hagrid about Snape's lesson. Hagrid, like Ron,
told Harry not to worry about it, that Snape liked hardly any of
the students.
"But he seemed to really hate me."
"Rubbish!" said Hagrid. "Why should he?"
Yet Harry couldn't help thinking that Hagrid didn't quite meet
his eyes when he said that.
"How's yer brother Charlie?" Hagrid asked Ron. "I liked him a
lot -- great with animals."
Harry wondered if Hagrid had changed the subject on
purpose. While Ron told Hagrid all about Charlie's work with dragons,
Harry picked up a piece of paper that was lying on the table under
the tea cozy. It was a cutting from the Daily Prophet:
GRINGOTTS BREAK-IN LATEST
Investigations continue into the break-in at Gringotts on 31
July, widely believed to be the work of Dark wizards or witches
unknown.
Gringotts goblins today insisted that nothing had been taken. The
vault that was searched had in fact been emptied the same day.
"But we're not telling you what was in there, so keep your noses
out if you know what's good for you," said a Gringotts spokesgoblin
this afternoon.
Harry remembered Ron telling him on the train that someone had
tried to rob Gringotts, but Ron hadn't mentioned the date.
"Hagrid!" said Harry, "that Gringotts break-in happened on my
birthday! It might've been happening while we were there!"
There was no doubt about it, Hagrid definitely didn't meet
Harry's eyes this time. He grunted and offered him another rock
cake. Harry read the story again. The vault that was searched had in
fact been emptied earlier that same day. Hagrid had emptied vault
seven hundred and thirteen, if you could call it emptying, taking
out that grubby little package. Had that been what the thieves were
looking for?
As Harry and Ron walked back to the castle for dinner, their
pockets weighed down with rock cakes they'd been too polite to
refuse, Harry thought that none of the lessons he'd had so far had
given him as much to think about as tea with Hagrid. Had Hagrid
collected that package just in time? Where was it now? And did
Hagrid know something about Snape that he didn't want to tell Harry?
CHAPTER NINE
THE MIDNIGHT DUEL
Harry had never believed he would meet a boy he hated more than
Dudley, but that was before he met Draco Malfoy. Still, first-year
Gryffindors only had Potions with the Slytherins, so they didn't
have to put up with Malfoy much. Or at least, they didn't until
they spotted a notice pinned up in the Gryffindor common room that
made them all groan. Flying lessons would be starting on Thursday --
and Gryffindor and Slytherin would be learning together.
"Typical," said Harry darkly. "Just what I always wanted. To
make a fool of myself on a broomstick in front of Malfoy."
He had been looking forward to learning to fly more than
anything else.
"You don't know that you'll make a fool of yourself," said Ron
reasonably. "Anyway, I know Malfoy's always going on about how good
he is at Quidditch, but I bet that's all talk."
Malfay certainly did talk about flying a lot. He complained
loudly about first years never getting on the house Quidditch teams
and told long, boastful stories that always seemed to end with him
narrowly escaping Muggles in helicopters. He wasn't the only one,
though: the way Seamus Finnigan told it, he'd spent most of his
childhood zooming around the countryside on his broomstick. Even
Ron would tell anyone who'd listen about the time he'd almost hit a
hang glider on Charlie's old broom. Everyone from wizarding families
talked about Quidditch constantly. Ron had already had a big argument
with Dean Thomas, who shared their dormitory, about soccer. Ron
couldn't see what was exciting about a game with only one ball where
no one was allowed to fly. Harry had caught Ron prodding Dean's
poster of West Ham soccer team, trying to make the players move.
Neville had never been on a broomstick in his life, because his
grandmother had never let him near one. Privately, Harry felt she'd
had good reason, because Neville managed to have an extraordinary
number of accidents even with both feet on the ground.
Hermione Granger was almost as nervous about flying as Neville
was. This was something you couldn't learn by heart out of a book
-- not that she hadn't tried. At breakfast on Thursday she bored
them all stupid with flying tips she'd gotten out of a library
book called Quidditch Through the Ages. Neville was hanging on to
her every word, desperate for anything that might help him hang on
to his broomstick later, but everybody else was very pleased when
Hermione's lecture was interrupted by the arrival of the mail.
Harry hadn't had a single letter since Hagrid's note, something
that Malfoy had been quick to notice, of course. Malfoy's eagle
owl was always bringing him packages of sweets from home, which he
opened gloatingly at the Slytherin table.
A barn owl brought Neville a small package from his
grandmother. He opened it excitedly and showed them a glass ball
the size of a large marble, which seemed to be full of white smoke.
"It's a Remembrall!" he explained. "Gran knows I forget things --
this tells you if there's something you've forgotten to do. Look,
you hold it tight like this and if it turns red -- oh..." His face
fell, because the Remembrall had suddenly glowed scarlet,
"You've forgotten something..."
Neville was trying to remember what he'd forgotten when Draco
Malfoy, who was passing the Gryffindor table, snatched the Remembrall
out of his hand.
Harry and Ron jumped to their feet. They were half hoping for
a reason to fight Malfay, but Professor McGonagall, who could spot
trouble quicker than any teacher in the school, was there in a flash.
"What's going on?"
"Malfoy's got my Remembrall, Professor."
Scowling, Malfoy quickly dropped the Remembrall back on the
table.
"Just looking," he said, and he sloped away with Crabbe and
Goyle behind him.
At three-thirty that afternoon, Harry, Ron, and the other
Gryffindors hurried down the front steps onto the grounds for their
first flying lesson. It was a clear, breezy day, and the grass
rippled under their feet as they marched down the sloping lawns
toward a smooth, flat lawn on the opposite side of the grounds to the
forbidden forest, whose trees were swaying darkly in the distance.
The Slytherins were already there, and so were twenty broomsticks
lying in neat lines on the ground. Harry had heard Fred and George
Weasley complain about the school brooms, saying that some of them
started to vibrate if you flew too high, or always flew slightly
to the left.
Their teacher, Madam Hooch, arrived. She had short, gray hair,
and yellow eyes like a hawk.
"Well, what are you all waiting for?" she barked. "Everyone
stand by a broomstick. Come on, hurry up."
Harry glanced down at his broom. It was old and some of the
twigs stuck out at odd angles.
"Stick out your right hand over your broom," called Madam Hooch
at the front, "and say 'Up!"'
"UPF everyone shouted.
Harry's broom jumped into his hand at once, but it was one
of the few that did. Hermione Granger's had simply rolled over
on the ground, and Neville's hadn't moved at all. Perhaps brooms,
like horses, could tell when you were afraid, thought Harry; there
was a quaver in Neville's voice that said only too clearly that he
wanted to keep his feet on the ground.
Madam Hooch then showed them how to mount their brooms without
sliding off the end, and walked up and down the rows correcting
their grips. Harry and Ron were delighted when she told Malfoy he'd
been doing it wrong for years.
"Now, when I blow my whistle, you kick off from the ground,
hard," said Madam Hooch. "Keep your brooms steady, rise a few feet,
and then come straight back down by leaning forward slightly. On
my whistle -- three -- two --"
But Neville, nervous and jumpy and frightened of being left on
the ground, pushed off hard before the whistle had touched Madam
Hooch's lips.
"Come back, boy!" she shouted, but Neville was rising straight up
like a cork shot out of a bottle -- twelve feet -- twenty feet. Harry
saw his scared white face look down at the ground falling away,
saw him gasp, slip sideways off the broom and --
WHAM -- a thud and a nasty crack and Neville lay facedown on
the grass in a heap. His broomstick was still rising higher and
higher, and started to drift lazily toward the forbidden forest
and out of sight.
Madam Hooch was bending over Neville, her face as white as his.
"Broken wrist," Harry heard her mutter. "Come on, boy -- it's
all right, up you get.".
She turned to the rest of the class.
"None of you is to move while I take this boy to the hospital
wing! You leave those brooms where they are or you'll be out of
Hogwarts before you can say 'Quidditch.' Come on, dear."
Neville, his face tear-streaked, clutching his wrist, hobbled
off with Madam Hooch, who had her arm around him.
No sooner were they out of earshot than Malfoy burst into
laughter.
"Did you see his face, the great lump?"
The other Slytherins joined in.
"Shut up, Malfoy," snapped Parvati Patil.
"Ooh, sticking up for Longbottom?" said Pansy Parkinson, a
hard-faced Slytherin girl. "Never thought you'd like fat little
crybabies, Parvati."
"Look!" said Malfoy, darting forward and snatching something out
of the grass. "It's that stupid thing Longbottom's gran sent him."
The Remembrall glittered in the sun as he held it up.
"Give that here, Malfoy," said Harry quietly. Everyone stopped
talking to watch.
Malfoy smiled nastily.
"I think I'll leave it somewhere for Longbottom to find --
how about -- up a tree?"
"Give it here!" Harry yelled, but Malfoy had leapt onto
his broomstick and taken off. He hadn't been lying, he could fly
well. Hovering level with the topmost branches of an oak he called,
"Come and get it, Potter!"
Harry grabbed his broom.
"No!" shouted Hermione Granger. "Madam Hooch told us not to
move -- you'll get us all into trouble."
Harry ignored her. Blood was pounding in his ears. He mounted the
broom and kicked hard against the ground and up, up he soared; air
rushed through his hair, and his robes whipped out behind him -and
in a rush of fierce joy he realized he'd found something he could do
without being taught -- this was easy, this was wonderful. He pulled
his broomstick up a little to take it even higher, and heard screams
and gasps of girls back on the ground and an admiring whoop from Ron.
He turned his broomstick sharply to face Malfoy in midair. Malfoy
looked stunned.
"Give it here," Harry called, "or I'll knock you off that
broom!" "Oh, yeah?" said Malfoy, trying to sneer, but looking
worried.
Harry knew, somehow, what to do. He leaned forward and grasped
the broom tightly in both hands, and it shot toward Malfay like a
javelin. Malfoy only just got out of the way in time; Harry made
a sharp about-face and held the broom steady. A few people below
were clapping.
"No Crabbe and Goyle up here to save your neck, Malfoy,"
Harry called.
The same thought seemed to have struck Malfoy.
"Catch it if you can, then!" he shouted, and he threw the glass
ball high into the air and streaked back toward the ground.
Harry saw, as though in slow motion, the ball rise up in the
air and then start to fall. He leaned forward and pointed his
broom handle down -- next second he was gathering speed in a steep
dive, racing the ball -- wind whistled in his ears, mingled with
the screams of people watching -- he stretched out his hand -- a
foot from the ground he caught it, just in time to pull his broom
straight, and he toppled gently onto the grass with the Remembrall
clutched safely in his fist.
"HARRY POTTER!"
His heart sank faster than he'd just dived. Professor McGonagall
was running toward them. He got to his feet, trembling.
"Never -- in all my time at Hogwarts --"
Professor McGonagall was almost speechless with shock, and her
glasses flashed furiously, "-- how dare you -- might have broken
your neck --"
"It wasn't his fault, Professor --"
"Be quiet, Miss Patil
"But Malfoy --"
"That's enough, Mr. Weasley. Potter, follow me, now."
Harry caught sight of Malfoy, Crabbe, and Goyle's triumphant
faces as he left, walking numbly in Professor McGonagall's wake as
she strode toward the castle. He was going to be expelled, he just
knew it. He wanted to say something to defend himself, but there
seemed to be something wrong with his voice. Professor McGonagall
was sweeping along without even looking at him; he had to jog to
keep up. Now he'd done it. He hadn't even lasted two weeks. He'd
be packing his bags in ten minutes. What would the Dursleys say
when he turned up on the doorstep?
Up the front steps, up the marble staircase inside, and still
Professor McGonagall didn't say a word to him. She wrenched open
doors and marched along corridors with Harry trotting miserably
behind her. Maybe she was taking him to Dumbledore. He thought of
Hagrid, expelled but allowed to stay on as gamekeeper. Perhaps he
could be Hagrid's assistant. His stomach twisted as he imagined
it, watching Ron and the others becoming wizards, while he stumped
around the grounds carrying Hagrid's bag.
Professor McGonagall stopped outside a classroom. She opened
the door and poked her head inside.
"Excuse me, Professor Flitwick, could I borrow Wood for
a moment?"
Wood? thought Harry, bewildered; was Wood a cane she was going
to use on him?
But Wood turned out to be a person, a burly fifth-year boy who
came out of Flitwicles class looking confused.
"Follow me, you two," said Professor McGonagall, and they
marched on up the corridor, Wood looking curiously at Harry.
"In here."
Professor McGonagall pointed them into a classroom that was empty
except for Peeves, who was busy writing rude words on the blackboard.
"Out, Peeves!" she barked. Peeves threw the chalk into a
bin, which clanged loudly, and he swooped out cursing. Professor
McGonagall slammed the door behind him and turned to face the
two boys.
"Potter, this is Oliver Wood. Wood -- I've found you a Seeker."
Wood's expression changed from puzzlement to delight.
"Are you serious, Professor?"
"Absolutely," said Professor McGonagall crisply. "The boy's
a natural. I've never seen anything like it. Was that your first
time on a broomstick, Potter?"
Harry nodded silently. He didn't have a clue what was going on,
but he didn't seem to be being expelled, and some of the feeling
started coming back to his legs.
"He caught that thing in his hand after a fifty-foot dive,"
Professor McGonagall told Wood. "Didn't even scratch himself. Charlie
Weasley couldn't have done it."
Wood was now looking as though all his dreams had come true
at once.
"Ever seen a game of Quidditch, Potter?" he asked excitedly.
"Wood's captain of the Gryffindor team," Professor McGonagall
explained.
"He's just the build for a Seeker, too," said Wood, now walking
around Harry and staring at him. "Light -- speedy -- we'll have
to get him a decent broom, Professor -- a Nimbus Two Thousand or
a Cleansweep Seven, I'd say."
I shall speak to Professor Dumbledore and see if we can't bend
the first-year rule. Heaven knows, we need a better team than last
year. Flattened in that last match by Slytherin, I couldn't look
Severus Snape in the face for weeks...."
Professor McGonagall peered sternly over her glasses at Harry.
"I want to hear you're training hard, Potter, or I may change
my mind about punishing you."
Then she suddenly smiled.
"Your father would have been proud," she said. "He was an
excellent Quidditch player himself."
"You're joking."
It was dinnertime. Harry had just finished telling Ron what had
happened when he'd left the grounds with Professor McGonagall. Ron
had a piece of steak and kidney pie halfway to his mouth, but he'd
forgotten all about it.
"Seeker?" he said. "But first years never -- you must be the
youngest house player in about a century, said Harry, shoveling pie
into his mouth. He felt particularly hungry after the excitement
of the afternoon. "Wood told me."
Ron was so amazed, so impressed, he just sat and gaped at Harry.
"I start training next week," said Harry. "Only don't tell
anyone, Wood wants to keep it a secret."
Fred and George Weasley now came into the hall, spotted Harry,
and hurried over.
"Well done," said George in a low voice. "Wood told us. We're
on the team too -- Beaters."
"I tell you, we're going to win that Quidditch cup for sure
this year," said Fred. "We haven't won since Charlie left, but
this year's team is going to be brilliant. You must be good, Harry,
Wood was almost skipping when he told us."
"Anyway, we've got to go, Lee Jordan reckons he's found a new
secret passageway out of the school."
"Bet it's that one behind the statue of Gregory the Smarmy that
we found in our first week. See you."
Fred and George had hardly disappeared when someone far less
welcome turned up: Malfoy, flanked by Crabbe and Goyle.
"Having a last meal, Potter? When are you getting the train
back to the Muggles?"
"You're a lot braver now that you're back on the ground and
you've got your little friends with you," said Harry coolly. There
was of course nothing at all little about Crabbe and Goyle, but as
the High Table was full of teachers, neither of them could do more
than crack their knuckles and scowl.
"I'd take you on anytime on my own," said Malfoy. "Tonight,
if you want. Wizard's duel. Wands only -- no contact. What's the
matter? Never heard of a wizard's duel before, I suppose?"
"Of course he has," said Ron, wheeling around. "I'm his second,
who's yours?"
Malfoy looked at Crabbe and Goyle, sizing them up.
"Crabbe," he said. "Midnight all right? We'll meet you in the
trophy room; that's always unlocked."
When Malfoy had gone, Ron and Harry looked at each other. "What
is a wizard's duel?" said Harry. "And what do you mean, you're
my second?"
"Well, a second's there to take over if you die," said Ron
casually, getting started at last on his cold pie. Catching the
look on Harry's face, he added quickly, "But people only die
in proper duels, you know, with real wizards. The most you and
Malfoy'll be able to do is send sparks at each other. Neither of
you knows enough magic to do any real damage. I bet he expected
you to refuse, anyway."
"And what if I wave my wand and nothing happens?"
"Throw it away and punch him on the nose," Ron suggested. "Excuse
me."
They both looked up. It was Hermione Granger.
"Can't a person eat in peace in this place?" said Ron.
Hermione ignored him and spoke to Harry.
"I couldn't help overhearing what you and Malfoy were saying --"
"Bet you could," Ron muttered.
"--and you mustn't go wandering around the school at night,
think of the points you'll lose Gryffindor if you're caught, and
you're bound to be. It's really very selfish of you."
"And it's really none of your business," said Harry.
"Good-bye," said Ron.
All the same, it wasn't what you'd call the perfect end to the
day, Harry thought, as he lay awake much later listening to Dean
and Seamus falling asleep (Neville wasn't back from the hospital
wing). Ron had spent all evening giving him advice such as "If he
tries to curse you, you'd better dodge it, because I can't remember
how to block them." There was a very good chance they were going to
get caught by Filch or Mrs. Norris, and Harry felt he was pushing
his luck, breaking another school rule today. On the other hand,
Malfoys sneering face kept looming up out of the darkness - this
was his big chance to beat Malfoy face-to-face. He couldn't miss it.
"Half-past eleven," Ron muttered at last, "we'd better go."
They pulled on their bathrobes, picked up their wands, and
crept across the tower room, down the spiral staircase, and into
the Gryffindor common room. A few embers were still glowing in the
fireplace, turning all the armchairs into hunched black shadows. They
had almost reached the portrait hole when a voice spoke from the
chair nearest them, "I can't believe you're going to do this, Harry."
A lamp flickered on. It was Hermione Granger, wearing a pink
bathrobe and a frown.
"You!" said Ron furiously. "Go back to bed!"
"I almost told your brother," Hermione snapped, "Percy --
he's a prefect, he'd put a stop to this."
Harry couldn't believe anyone could be so interfering.
"Come on," he said to Ron. He pushed open the portrait of the
Fat Lady and climbed through the hole.
Hermione wasn't going to give up that easily. She followed Ron
through the portrait hole, hissing at them like an angry goose.
"Don't you care about Gryffindor, do you only care about
yourselves, I don't want Slytherin to win the house cup, and you'll
lose all the points I got from Professor McGonagall for knowing
about Switching Spells."
"Go away." "All right, but I warned you, you just remember what
I said when you're on the train home tomorrow, you're so --"
But what they were, they didn't find out. Hermione had turned to
the portrait of the Fat Lady to get back inside and found herself
facing an empty painting. The Fat Lady had gone on a nighttime
visit and Hermione was locked out of Gryffindor tower.
"Now what am I going to do?" she asked shrilly.
"That's your problem," said Ron. "We've got to go, we 3 re
going to be late."
They hadn't even reached the end of the corridor when Hermione
caught up with them.
"I'm coming with you," she said.
"You are not."
"D'you think I'm going to stand out here and wait for Filch
to catch me? If he finds all three of us I'll tell him the truth,
that I was trying to stop you, and you can back me up."
"You've got some nerve --" said Ron loudly.
"Shut up, both of you!" said Harry sharply. I heard something."
It was a sort of snuffling.
"Mrs. Norris?" breathed Ron, squinting through the dark.
It wasn't Mrs. Norris. It was Neville. He was curled up on the
floor, fast asleep, but jerked suddenly awake as they crept nearer.
"Thank goodness you found me! I've been out here for hours,
I couldn't remember the new password to get in to bed."
"Keep your voice down, Neville. The password's 'Pig snout'
but it won't help you now, the Fat Lady's gone off somewhere."
"How's your arm?" said Harry.
"Fine," said Neville, showing them. "Madam Pomfrey mended it
in about a minute."
"Good - well, look, Neville, we've got to be somewhere, we'll
see you later --"
"Don't leave me!" said Neville, scrambling to his feet, "I don't
want to stay here alone, the Bloody Baron's been past twice already."
Ron looked at his watch and then glared furiously at Hermione
and Neville.
"If either of you get us caught, I'll never rest until I've
learned that Curse of the Bogies Quirrell told us about, and used
it on you.
Hermione opened her mouth, perhaps to tell Ron exactly how to
use the Curse of the Bogies, but Harry hissed at her to be quiet
and beckoned them all forward.
They flitted along corridors striped with bars of moonlight from
the high windows. At every turn Harry expected to run into Filch
or Mrs. Norris, but they were lucky. They sped up a staircase to
the third floor and tiptoed toward the trophy room.
Malfoy and Crabbe weren't there yet. The crystal trophy cases
glimmered where the moonlight caught them. Cups, shields, plates,
and statues winked silver and gold in the darkness. They edged
along the walls, keeping their eyes on the doors at either end
of the room. Harry took out his wand in case Malfoy leapt in and
started at once. The minutes crept by.
"He's late, maybe he's chickened out," Ron whispered.
Then a noise in the next room made them jump. Harry had only just
raised his wand when they heard someone speak -and it wasn't Malfoy.
"Sniff around, my sweet, they might be lurking in a corner."
It was Filch speaking to Mrs. Norris. Horror-struck, Harry waved
madly at the other three to follow him as quickly as possible; they
scurried silently toward the door, away from Filch's voice. Neville's
robes had barely whipped round the corner when they heard Filch
enter the trophy room.
"They're in here somewhere," they heard him mutter, "probably
hiding."
"This way!" Harry mouthed to the others and, petrified, they
began to creep down a long gallery full of suits of armor. They could
hear Filch getting nearer. Neville suddenly let out a frightened
squeak and broke into a run -he tripped, grabbed Ron around the
waist, and the pair of them toppled right into a suit of armor.
The clanging and crashing were enough to wake the whole castle.
"RUN!" Harry yelled, and the four of them sprinted down the
gallery, not looking back to see whether Filch was following --
they swung around the doorpost and galloped down one corridor then
another, Harry in the lead, without any idea where they were or
where they were going -- they ripped through a tapestry and found
themselves in a hidden passageway, hurtled along it and came out
near their Charms classroom, which they knew was miles from the
trophy room.
"I think we've lost him," Harry panted, leaning against the
cold wall and wiping his forehead. Neville was bent double, wheezing
and spluttering.
I -- told -you," Hermione gasped, clutching at the stitch in
her chest, "I -- told -- you."
"We've got to get back to Gryffindor tower," said Ron, "quickly
as possible."
"Malfoy tricked you," Hermione said to Harry. "You realize that,
don't you? He was never going to meet you -- Filch knew someone
was going to be in the trophy room, Malfoy must have tipped him off."
Harry thought she was probably right, but he wasn't going to
tell her that.
"Let's go."
It wasn't going to be that simple. They hadn't gone more than
a dozen paces when a doorknob rattled and something came shooting
out of a classroom in front of them.
It was Peeves. He caught sight of them and gave a squeal
of delight.
"Shut up, Peeves -- please -- you'll get us thrown out."
Peeves cackled.
"Wandering around at midnight, Ickle Firsties? Tut, tut,
tut. Naughty, naughty, you'll get caughty."
"Not if you don't give us away, Peeves, please."
"Should tell Filch, I should," said Peeves in a saintly voice,
but his eyes glittered wickedly. "It's for your own good, you know."
"Get out of the way," snapped Ron, taking a swipe at Peeves
this was a big mistake.
"STUDENTS OUT OF BED!" Peeves bellowed, "STUDENTS OUT OF BED
DOWN THE CHARMS CORRIDOR"
Ducking under Peeves, they ran for their lives, right to the end
of the corridor where they slammed into a door -- and it was locked.
"This is it!" Ron moaned, as they pushed helplessly at the door,
"We're done for! This is the end!" They could hear footsteps,
Filch running as fast as he could toward Peeves's shouts.
"Oh, move over," Hermione snarled. She grabbed Harry's wand,
tapped the lock, and whispered, 'Alohomora!"
The lock clicked and the door swung open -- they piled through
it, shut it quickly, and pressed their ears against it, listening.
"Which way did they go, Peeves?" Filch was saying. "Quick,
tell me."
"Say 'please."'
"Don't mess with me, Peeves, now where did they go?"
"Shan't say nothing if you don't say please," said Peeves in
his annoying singsong voice.
"All right -please."
"NOTHING! Ha haaa! Told you I wouldn't say nothing if you
didn't say please! Ha ha! Haaaaaa!" And they heard the sound of
Peeves whooshing away and Filch cursing in rage.
"He thinks this door is locked," Harry whispered. "I think
we'll be okay -- get off, Neville!" For Neville had been tugging
on the sleeve of Harry's bathrobe for the last minute. "What?"
Harry turned around -- and saw, quite clearly, what. For a
moment, he was sure he'd walked into a nightmare -- this was too
much, on top of everything that had happened so far.
They weren't in a room, as he had supposed. They were in a
corridor. The forbidden corridor on the third floor. And now they
knew why it was forbidden.
They were looking straight into the eyes of a monstrous dog,
a dog that filled the whole space between ceiling and floor. It had
three heads. Three pairs of rolling, mad eyes; three noses, twitching
and quivering in their direction; three drooling mouths, saliva
hanging in slippery ropes from yellowish fangs.
It was standing quite still, all six eyes staring at them,
and Harry knew that the only reason they weren't already dead
was that their sudden appearance had taken it by surprise, but it
was quickly getting over that, there was no mistaking what those
thunderous growls meant.
Harry groped for the doorknob -- between Filch and death,
he'd take Filch.
They fell backward -- Harry slammed the door shut, and they ran,
they almost flew, back down the corridor. Filch must have hurried
off to look for them somewhere else, because they didn't see him
anywhere, but they hardly cared -- all they wanted to do was put as
much space as possible between them and that monster. They didn't
stop running until they reached the portrait of the Fat Lady on
the seventh floor.
"Where on earth have you all been?" she asked, looking at
their bathrobes hanging off their shoulders and their flushed,
sweaty faces.
"Never mind that -- pig snout, pig snout," panted Harry, and
the portrait swung forward. They scrambled into the common room
and collapsed, trembling, into armchairs.
It was a while before any of them said anything. Neville,
indeed, looked as if he'd never speak again.
"What do they think they're doing, keeping a thing like that
locked up in a school?" said Ron finally. "If any dog needs exercise,
that one does."
Hermione had got both her breath and her bad temper back
again. "You don't use your eyes, any of you, do you?" she
snapped. "Didn't you see what it was standing on.
"The floor?" Harry suggested. "I wasn't looking at its feet,
I was too busy with its heads."
"No, not the floor. It was standing on a trapdoor. It's obviously
guarding something."
She stood up, glaring at them.
I hope you're pleased with yourselves. We could all have been
killed -- or worse, expelled. Now, if you don't mind, I'm going
to bed."
Ron stared after her, his mouth open.
"No, we don't mind," he said. "You'd think we dragged her along,
wouldn't you.
But Hermione had given Harry something else to think about as
he climbed back into bed. The dog was guarding something.... What
had Hagrid said? Gringotts was the safest place in the world for
something you wanted to hide -- except perhaps Hogwarts.
It looked as though Harry had found out where the grubby littie
package from vault seven hundred and thirteen was.
CHAPTER TEN
HALLOWEEN
Malfoy couldn't believe his eyes when he saw that Harry and Ron
were still at Hogwarts the next day, looking tired but perfectly
cheerful. Indeed, by the next morning Harry and Ron thought that
meeting the three-headed dog had been an excellent adventure, and
they were quite keen to have another one. In the meantime, Harry
filled Ron in about the package that seemed to have been moved
from Gringotts to Hogwarts, and they spent a lot of time wondering
what could possibly need such heavy protection. "It's either really
valuable or really dangerous," said Ron. "Or both," said Harry.
But as all they knew for sure about the mysterious object was
that it was about two inches long, they didn't have much chance of
guessing what it was without further clues.
Neither Neville nor Hermione showed the slightest interest in
what lay underneath the dog and the trapdoor. All Neville cared
about was never going near the dog again.
Hermione was now refusing to speak to Harry and Ron, but she was
such a bossy know-it-all that they saw this as an added bonus. All
they really wanted now was a way of getting back at Malfoy, and to
their great delight, just such a thing arrived in the mail about
a week later.
As the owls flooded into the Great Hall as usual, everyone's
attention was caught at once by a long, thin package carried by
six large screech owls. Harry was just as interested as everyone
else to see what was in this large parcel, and was amazed when the
owls soared down and dropped it right in front of him, knocking
his bacon to the floor. They had hardly fluttered out of the way
when another owl dropped a letter on top of the parcel.
Harry ripped open the letter first, which was lucky, because
it said:
DO NOT OPEN THE PARCEL AT THE TABLE.
It contains your new Nimbus Two Thousand, but I don't want
everybody knowing you've got a broomstick or they'll all want
one. Oliver Wood will meet you tonight on the Quidditch field at
seven o'clock for your first training session.
Professor McGonagall
Harry had difficulty hiding his glee as he handed the note to
Ron to read.
"A Nimbus Two Thousand!" Ron moaned enviously. "I've never even
touched one."
They left the hall quickly, wanting to unwrap the broomstick in
private before their first class, but halfway across the entrance
hall they found the way upstairs barred by Crabbe and Goyle. Malfoy
seized the package from Harry and felt it.
"That's a broomstick," he said, throwing it back to Harry with
a mixture of jealousy and spite on his face. "You'll be in for it
this time, Potter, first years aren't allowed them."
Ron couldn't resist it.
"It's not any old broomstick," he said, "it's a Nimbus Two
Thousand. What did you say you've got at home, Malfoy, a Comet Two
Sixty?" Ron grinned at Harry. "Comets look flashy, but they're not
in the same league as the Nimbus."
"What would you know about it, Weasley, you couldn't afford half
the handle," Malfoy snapped back. "I suppose you and your brothers
have to save up twig by twig."
Before Ron could answer, Professor Flitwick appeared at
Malfoy's elbow.
"Not arguing, I hope, boys?" he squeaked.
"Potter's been sent a broomstick, Professor," said Malfoy
quickly.
"Yes, yes, that's right," said Professor Flitwick, beaming
at Harry. "Professor McGonagall told me all about the special
circumstances, Potter. And what model is it?"
"A Nimbus Two Thousand, sit," said Harry, fighting not to laugh
at the look of horror on Malfoy's face. "And it's really thanks to
Malfoy here that I've got it," he added.
Harry and Ron headed upstairs, smothering their laughter at
Malfoy's obvious rage and confusion. "Well, it's true," Harry
chortled as they reached the top of the marble staircase, "If he
hadn't stolen Neville's Remembrall I wouln't be on the team...."
"So I suppose you think that's a reward for breaking rules?" came
an angry voice from just behind them. Hermione was stomping up the
stairs, looking disapprovingly at the package in Harry's hand.
"I thought you weren't speaking to us?" said Harry.
"Yes, don't stop now," said Ron, "it's doing us so much good."
Hermione marched away with her nose in the air.
Harry had a lot of trouble keeping his mind on his lessons that
day. It kept wandering up to the dormitory where his new broomstick
was lying under his bed, or straying off to the Quidditch field
where he'd be learning to play that night. He bolted his dinner
that evening without noticing what he was eating, and then rushed
upstairs with Ron to unwrap the Nimbus Two Thousand at last.
"Wow," Ron sighed, as the broomstick rolled onto Harry's
bedspread.
Even Harry, who knew nothing about the different brooms, thought
it looked wonderful. Sleek and shiny, with a mahogany handle, it
had a long tail of neat, straight twigs and Nimbus Two Thousand
written in gold near the top.
As seven o'clock drew nearer, Harry left the castle and set off
in the dusk toward the Quidditch field. Held never been inside the
stadium before. Hundreds of seats were raised in stands around the
field so that the spectators were high enough to see what was going
on. At either end of the field were three golden poles with hoops
on the end. They reminded Harry of the little plastic sticks Muggle
children blew bubbles through, except that they were fifty
feet high.
Too eager to fly again to wait for Wood, Harry mounted his
broomstick and kicked off from the ground. What a feeling -- he
swooped in and out of the goal posts and then sped up and down the
field. The Nimbus Two Thousand turned wherever he wanted at his
lightest touch.
"Hey, Potter, come down!'
Oliver Wood had arrived. fie was carrying a large wooden crate
under his arm. Harry landed next to him.
"Very nice," said Wood, his eyes glinting. "I see what McGonagall
meant... you really are a natural. I'm just going to teach you
the rules this evening, then you'll be joining team practice three
times a week."
He opened the crate. Inside were four different-sized balls.
"Right," said Wood. "Now, Quidditch is easy enough to understand,
even if it's not too easy to play. There are seven players on each
side. Three of them are called Chasers."
"Three Chasers," Harry repeated, as Wood took out a bright red
ball about the size of a soccer ball.
"This ball's called the Quaffle," said Wood. "The Chasers
throw the Quaffle to each other and try and get it through one of
the hoops to score a goal. Ten points every time the Quaffle goes
through one of the hoops. Follow me?"
"The Chasers throw the Quaffle and put it through the hoops
to score," Harry recited. "So -- that's sort of like basketball on
broomsticks with six hoops, isn't it?"
"What's basketball?" said Wood curiously. "Never mind," said
Harry quickly.
"Now, there's another player on each side who's called the
Keeper -I'm Keeper for Gryffindor. I have to fly around our hoops
and stop the other team from scoring."
"Three Chasers, one Keeper," said Harry, who was determined
to remember it all. "And they play with the Quaffle. Okay, got
that. So what are they for?" He pointed at the three balls left
inside the box.
"I'll show you now," said Wood. "Take this."
He handed Harry a small club, a bit like a short baseball bat.
"I'm going to show you what the Bludgers do," Wood said. "These
two are the Bludgers."
He showed Harry two identical balls, jet black and slightly
smaller than the red Quaffle. Harry noticed that they seemed to be
straining to escape the straps holding them inside the box.
"Stand back," Wood warned Harry. He bent down and freed one of
the Bludgers.
At once, the black ball rose high in the air and then pelted
straight at Harry's face. Harry swung at it with the bat to stop it
from breaking his nose, and sent it zigzagging away into the air --
it zoomed around their heads and then shot at Wood, who dived on
top of it and managed to pin it to the ground.
"See?" Wood panted, forcing the struggling Bludger back into the
crate and strapping it down safely. "The Bludgers rocket around,
trying to knock players off their brooms. That's why you have two
Beaters on each team -- the Weasley twins are ours -- it's their
job to protect their side from the Bludgers and try and knock them
toward the other team. So -- think you've got all that?"
"Three Chasers try and score with the Quaffle; the Keeper guards
the goal posts; the Beaters keep the Bludgers away from their team,"
Harry reeled off.
"Very good," said Wood.
"Er -- have the Bludgers ever killed anyone?" Harry asked,
hoping he sounded offhand.
"Never at Hogwarts. We've had a couple of broken jaws but
nothing worse than that. Now, the last member of the team is the
Seeker. That's you. And you don't have to worry about the
Quaffle or the Bludgers unless they crack my head open."
"Don't worry, the Weasleys are more than a match for the Bludgers
-- I mean, they're like a pair of human Bludgers themselves."
Wood reached into the crate and took out the fourth and last
ball. Compared with the Quaffle and the Bludgers, it was tiny,
about the size of a large walnut. It was bright gold and had little
fluttering silver wings.
"This," said Wood, "is the Golden Snitch, and it's the most
important ball of the lot. It's very hard to catch because it's
so fast and difficult to see. It's the Seeker's job to catch
it. You've got to weave in and out of the Chasers, Beaters,
Bludgers, and Quaffle to get it before the other team's Seeker,
because whichever Seeker catches the Snitch wins his team an extra
hundred and fifty points, so they
nearly always win. That's why Seekers get fouled so much. A game
of Quidditch only ends when the Snitch is caught, so it can go on
for ages -- I think the record is three months, they had to keep
bringing on substitutes so the players could get some sleep. "Well,
that's it -- any questions?"
Harry shook his head. He understood what he had to do all right,
it was doing it that was going to be the problem.
"We won't practice with the Snitch yet," said Wood, carefully
shutting it back inside the crate, "it's too dark, we might lose
it. Let's try you out with a few of these."
He pulled a bag of ordinary golf balls out of his pocket and a
few minutes later, he and Harry were up in the air, Wood throwing the
golf balls as hard as he could in every direction for Harry to catch.
Harry didn't miss a single one, and Wood was delighted. After
half an hour, night had really fallen and they couldn't carry on.
"That Quidditch cup'll have our name on it this year," said
Wood happily as they trudged back up to the castle. "I wouldn't
be surprised if you turn out better than Charlie Weasley, and he
could have played for England if he hadn't gone off chasing dragons."
Perhaps it was because he was now so busy, what with Quidditch
practice three evenings a week on top of all his homework, but
Harry could hardly believe it when he realized that he'd already
been at Hogwarts two months. The castle felt more like home than
Privet Drive ever had. His lessons, too, were becoming more and
more interesting now that they had mastered the basics.
On Halloween morning they woke to the delicious smell of baking
pumpkin wafting through the corridors. Even better, Professor
Flitwick announced in Charms that he thought they were ready
to start making objects fly, something they had all been dying
to try since they'd seen him make Neville's toad zoom around
the classroom. Professor Flitwick put the class into pairs to
practice. Harry's partner was Seamus Finnigan (which was a relief,
because Neville had been trying to catch his eye). Ron, however,
was to be working with Hermione Granger. It was hard to tell whether
Ron or Hermione was angrier about this. She hadn't spoken to either
of them since the day Harry's broomstick had arrived.
"Now, don't forget that nice wrist movement we've been
practicing!" squeaked Professor Flitwick, perched on top of his
pile of books as usual. "Swish and flick, remember, swish and
flick. And saying the magic words properly is very important,
too -- never forget Wizard Baruffio, who said 's' instead of 'f'
and found himself on the floor with a buffalo on his chest."
It was very difficult. Harry and Seamus swished and flicked,
but the feather they were supposed to be sending skyward just lay
on the desktop. Seamus got so impatient that he prodded it with
his wand and set fire to it -- Harry had to put it out with his hat.
Ron, at the next table, wasn't having much more luck.
"Wingardium Leviosa!" he shouted, waving his long arms like
a windmill.
"You're saying it wrong," Harry heard Hermione snap. "It's
Wing-gar-dium Levi-o-sa, make the 'gar' nice and long."
"You do it, then, if you're so clever," Ron snarled.
Hermione rolled up the sleeves of her gown, flicked her wand,
and said, "Wingardium Leviosa!"
Their feather rose off the desk and hovered about four feet
above their heads.
"Oh, well done!" cried Professor Flitwick, clapping. "Everyone
see here, Miss Granger's done it!"
Ron was in a very bad mood by the end of the class. "It's no
wonder no one can stand her," he said to Harry as they pushed their
way into the crowded corridor, "she's a nightmare, honestly. "
Someone knocked into Harry as they hurried past him. It was
Hermione. Harry caught a glimpse of her face -- and was startled
to see that she was in tears.
"I think she heard you."
"So?" said Ron, but he looked a bit uncomfortable. "She must've
noticed she's got no friends."
Hermione didn't turn up for the next class and wasn't seen all
afternoon. On their way down to the Great Hall for the Halloween
feast, Harry and Ron overheard Parvati Patil telling her friend
Lavender that Hermione was crying in the girls' bathroom and wanted
to be left alone. Ron looked still more awkward at this, but a
moment later they had entered the Great Hall, where the Halloween
decorations put Hermione out of their minds.
A thousand live bats fluttered from the walls and ceiling while
a thousand more swooped over the tables in low black clouds, making
the candles in the pumpkins stutter. The feast appeared suddenly
on the golden plates, as it had at the start-of-term banquet.
Harry was just helping himself to a baked potato when Professor
Quirrell came sprinting into the hall, his turban askew and terror on
his face. Everyone stared as he reached Professor Dumbledore's chair,
slumped against the table, and gasped, "Troll -- in the dungeons --
thought you ought to know."
He then sank to the floor in a dead faint.
There was an uproar. It took several purple firecrackers
exploding from the end of Professor Dumbledore's wand to bring
silence.
"Prefects," he rumbled, "lead your Houses back to the dormitories
immediately!"
Percy was in his element.
"Follow me! Stick together, first years! No need to fear the
troll if you follow my orders! Stay close behind me, now. Make way,
first years coming through! Excuse me, I'm a prefect!"
"How could a troll get in?" Harry asked as they climbed the
stairs.
"Don't ask me, they're supposed to be really stupid," said
Ron. "Maybe Peeves let it in for a Halloween joke."
They passed different groups of people hurrying in different
directions. As they jostled their way through a crowd of confused
Hufflepuffs, Harry suddenly grabbed Ron's arm.
"I've just thought -- Hermione."
"What about her?"
"She doesn't know about the troll."
Ron bit his lip.
"Oh, all right," he snapped. "But Percy'd better not see us."
Ducking down, they joined the Hufflepuffs going the other way,
slipped down a deserted side corridor, and hurried off toward the
girls' bathroom. They had just turned the corner when they heard
quick footsteps behind them.
"Percy!" hissed Ron, pulling Harry behind a large stone griffin.
Peering around it, however, they saw not Percy but Snape. He
crossed the corridor and disappeared from view.
"What's he doing?" Harry whispered. "Why isn't he down in the
dungeons with the rest of the teachers?"
"Search me."
Quietly as possible, they crept along the next corridor after
Snape's fading footsteps.
"He's heading for the third floor," Harry said, but Ron held
up his hand.
"Can you smell something?"
Harry sniffed and a foul stench reached his nostrils, a mixture
of old socks and the kind of public toilet no one seems to clean.
And then they heard it -- a low grunting, and the shuffling
footfalls of gigantic feet. Ron pointed -- at the end of a passage
to the left, something huge was moving toward them. They shrank
into the shadows and watched as it emerged into a patch of moonlight.
It was a horrible sight. Twelve feet tall, its skin was a dull,
granite gray, its great lumpy body like a boulder with its small
bald head perched on top like a coconut. It had short legs thick
as tree trunks with flat, horny feet. The smell coming from it was
incredible. It was holding a huge wooden club, which dragged along
the floor because its arms were so long.
The troll stopped next to a doorway and peered inside. It waggled
its long ears, making up its tiny mind, then slouched slowly into
the room.
"The keys in the lock," Harry muttered. "We could lock it in."
"Good idea," said Ron nervously.
They edged toward the open door, mouths dry, praying the troll
wasn't about to come out of it. With one great leap, Harry managed
to grab the key, slam the door, and lock it.
'Yes!"
Flushed with their victory, they started to run back up the
passage, but as they reached the corner they heard something that
made their hearts stop -- a high, petrified scream -- and it was
coming from the chamber they'd just chained up.
"Oh, no," said Ron, pale as the Bloody Baron.
"It's the girls' bathroom!" Harry gasped.
"Hermione!" they said together.
It was the last thing they wanted to do, but what choice did
they have? Wheeling around, they sprinted back to the door and
turned the key, fumbling in their panic. Harry pulled the door open
and they ran inside.
Hermione Granger was shrinking against the wall opposite,
looking as if she was about to faint. The troll was advancing on her,
knocking the sinks off the walls as it went.
"Confuse it!" Harry said desperately to Ron, and, seizing a tap,
he threw it as hard as he could against the wall.
The troll stopped a few feet from Hermione. It lumbered around,
blinking stupidly, to see what had made the noise. Its mean little
eyes saw Harry. It hesitated, then made for him instead, lifting
its club as it went.
"Oy, pea-brain!" yelled Ron from the other side of the chamber,
and he threw a metal pipe at it. The troll didn't even seem to
notice the pipe hitting its shoulder, but it heard the yell and
paused again, turning its ugly snout toward Ron instead, giving
Harry time to run around it.
"Come on, run, run!" Harry yelled at Hermione, trying to pull
her toward the door, but she couldn't move, she was still flat
against the wall, her mouth open with terror.
The shouting and the echoes seemed to be driving the troll
berserk. It roared again and started toward Ron, who was nearest
and had no way to escape.
Harry then did something that was both very brave and very
stupid: He took a great running jump and managed to fasten his arms
around the troll's neck from behind. The troll couldn't feel Harry
hanging there, but even a troll will notice if you stick a long bit
of wood up its nose, and Harry's wand had still been in his hand when
he'd jumped -- it had gone straight up one of the troll's nostrils.
Howling with pain, the troll twisted and flailed its club,
with Harry clinging on for dear life; any second, the troll was
going to rip him off or catch him a terrible blow with the club.
Hermione had sunk to the floor in fright; Ron pulled out his
own wand -- not knowing what he was going to do he heard himself
cry the first spell that came into his head: "Wingardium Leviosa!"
The club flew suddenly out of the troll's hand, rose high, high
up into the air, turned slowly over -- and dropped, with a sickening
crack, onto its owner's head. The troll swayed on the spot and then
fell flat on its face, with a thud that made the whole room tremble.
Harry got to his feet. He was shaking and out of breath. Ron
was standing there with his wand still raised, staring at what he
had done.
It was Hermione who spoke first.
"Is it -- dead?"
I don't think so," said Harry, I think it's just been knocked
out."
He bent down and pulled his wand out of the troll's nose. It
was covered in what looked like lumpy gray glue.
"Urgh -- troll boogers."
He wiped it on the troll's trousers.
A sudden slamming and loud footsteps made the three of them
look up. They hadn't realized what a racket they had been making,
but of course, someone downstairs must have heard the crashes and
the troll's roars. A moment later, Professor McGonagall had come
bursting into the room, closely followed by Snape, with Quirrell
bringing up the rear. Quirrell took one look at the troll, let out a
faint whimper, and sat quickly down on a toilet, clutching his heart.
Snape bent over the troll. Professor McGonagall was looking at
Ron and Harry. Harry had never seen her look so angry. Her lips
were white. Hopes of winning fifty points for Gryffindor faded
quickly from Harry's mind.
"What on earth were you thinking of?" said Professor McGonagall,
with cold fury in her voice. Harry looked at Ron, who was still
standing with his wand in the air. "You're lucky you weren't
killed. Why aren't you in your dormitory?"
Snape gave Harry a swift, piercing look. Harry looked at the
floor. He wished Ron would put his wand down.
Then a small voice came out of the shadows.
"Please, Professor McGonagall -- they were looking for me."
"Miss Granger!"
Hermione had managed to get to her feet at last.
I went looking for the troll because I -- I thought I could deal
with it on my own -- you know, because I've read all about them."
Ron dropped his wand. Hermione Granger, telling a downright lie
to a teacher? "If they hadn't found me, I'd be dead now. Harry stuck
his wand up its nose and Ron knocked it out with its own club. They
didn't have time to come and fetch anyone. It was about to finish
me off when they arrived."
Harry and Ron tried to look as though this story wasn't new
to them.
"Well -- in that case..." said Professor McGonagall, staring
at the three of them, "Miss Granger, you foolish girl, how could
you think of tackling a mountain troll on your own?"
Hermione hung her head. Harry was speechless. Hermione was the
last person to do anything against the rules, and here she was,
pretending she had, to get them out of trouble. It was as if Snape
had started handing out sweets.
"Miss Granger, five points will be taken from Gryffindor
for this," said Professor McGonagall. "I'm very disappointed in
you. If you're not hurt at all, you'd better get off to Gryffindor
tower. Students are finishing the feast in their houses."
Hermione left.
Professor McGonagall turned to Harry and Ron.
"Well, I still say you were lucky, but not many first years
could have taken on a full-grown mountain troll. You each win
Gryffindor five points. Professor Dumbledore will be informed of
this. You may go."
They hurried out of the chamber and didn't speak at all until
they had climbed two floors up. It was a relief to be away from
the smell of the troll, quite apart from anything else.
"We should have gotten more than ten points," Ron grumbled.
"Five, you mean, once she's taken off Hermione's."
"Good of her to get us out of trouble like that," Ron
admitted. "Mind you, we did save her."
"She might not have needed saving if we hadn't locked the thing
in with her," Harry reminded him.
They had reached the portrait of the Fat Lady.
"Pig snout," they said and entered.
The common room was packed and noisy. Everyone was eating the
food that had been sent up. Hermione, however, stood alone by the
door, waiting for them. There was a very embarrassed pause. Then,
none of them looking at each other, they all said "Thanks," and
hurried off to get plates.
But from that moment on, Hermione Granger became their
friend. There are some things you can't share without ending up
liking each other, and knocking out a twelve-foot mountain troll
is one of them.
CHAPTER ELEVEN
QUIDDITCH
As they entered November, the weather turned very cold. The
mountains around the school became icy gray and the lake like chilled
steel. Every morning the ground was covered in frost. Hagrid could
be seen from the upstairs windows defrosting broomsticks on the
Quidditch field, bundled up in a long moleskin overcoat, rabbit
fur gloves, and enormous beaverskin boots.
The Quidditch season had begun. On Saturday, Harry would
be playing in his first match after weeks of training: Gryffindor
versus Slytherin. If Gryffindor won, they would move up into second
place in the house championship.
Hardly anyone had seen Harry play because Wood had decided that,
as their secret weapon, Harry should be kept, well, secret. But
the news that he was playing Seeker had leaked out somehow, and
Harry didn't know which was worse -- people telling him he'd be
brilliant or people telling him they'd be running around underneath
him holding a mattress.
It was really lucky that Harry now had Hermlone as a friend. He
didn't know how he'd have gotten through all his homework without
her, what with all the last-minute Quidditch practice Wood was
making them do. She had also tent him Quidditch Through the Ages,
which turned out to be a very interesting read.
Harry learned that there were seven hundred ways of committing
a Quidditch foul and that all of them had happened during a World
Cup match in 1473; that Seekers were usually the smallest and
fastest players, and that most serious Quidditch accidents seemed to
happen to them; that although people rarely died playing Quidditch,
referees had been known to vanish and turn up months later in the
Sahara Desert.
Hermione had become a bit more relaxed about breaking rules
since Harry and Ron had saved her from the mountain troll, and she
was much nicer for it. The day before Harry's first Quidditch match
the three of them were out in the freezing courtyard during break,
and she had conjured them up a bright blue fire that could be
carried around in a jam jar. They were standing with their backs
to it, getting warm, when Snape crossed the yard. Harry noticed
at once that Snape was limping. Harry, Ron, and Hermione moved
closer together to block the fire from view; they were sure it
wouldn't be allowed. Unfortunately, something about their guilty
faces caught Snape's eye. He limped over. He hadn't seen the fire,
but he seemed to be looking for a reason to tell them off anyway.
"What's that you've got there, Potter?"
It was Quidditch Through the Ages. Harry showed him.
"Library books are not to be taken outside the school," said
Snape. "Give it to me. Five points from Gryffindor."
"He's just made that rule up," Harry muttered angrily as Snape
limped away. "Wonder what's wrong with his leg?"
"Dunno, but I hope it's really hurting him," said Ron bitterly.
The Gryffindor common room was very noisy that evening. Harry,
Ron, and Hermione sat together next to a window. Hermione was
checking Harry and Ron's Charms homework for them. She would never
let them copy ("How will you learn?"), but by asking her to read
it through, they got the right answers anyway.
Harry felt restless. He wanted Quidditch Through the Ages back,
to take his mind off his nerves about tomorrow. Why should he be
afraid of Snape? Getting up, he told Ron and Hermione he was going
to ask Snape if he could have it.
"Better you than me," they said together, but Harry had an idea
that Snape wouldn't refuse if there were other teachers listening.
He made his way down to the staffroom and knocked. There was
no answer. He knocked again. Nothing.
Perhaps Snape had left the book in there? It was worth a try. He
pushed the door ajar and peered inside -- and a horrible scene met
his eyes.
Snape and Filch were inside, alone. Snape was holding his robes
above his knees. One of his legs was bloody and mangled. Filch was
handing Snape bandages.
"Blasted thing*," Snape was saying. "How are you supposed to
keep your eyes on all three heads at once?"
Harry tried to shut the door quietly, but --
"POTTER!"
Snape's face was twisted with fury as he dropped his robes
quickly to hide his leg. Harry gulped.
"I just wondered if I could have my book back."
"GET OUT! OUT!"
Harry left, before Snape could take any more points from
Gryffindor. He sprinted back upstairs.
"Did you get it?" Ron asked as Harry joined them. "What's
the matter?"
In a low whisper, Harry told them what he'd seen.
"You know what this means?" he finished breathlessly. "He tried
to get past that three-headed dog at Halloween! That's where he was
going when we saw him -- he's after whatever it's guarding! And Id
bet my broomstick he let that troll in, to make a diversion!"
Hermione's eyes were wide.
"No -- he wouldn't, she said. "I know he's not very nice,
but he wouldn't try and steal something Dumbledore was keeping safe."
"Honestly, Hermione, you think all teachers are saints or
something," snapped Ron. "I'm with Harry. I wouldn't put anything
past Snape. But what's he after? What's that dog guarding?"
Harry went to bed with his head buzzing with the same
question. Neville was snoring loudly, but Harry couldn't sleep. He
tried to empty his mind -- he needed to sleep, he had to, he had
his first Quidditch match in a few hours -- but the expression on
Snape's face when Harry had seen his leg wasn't easy to forget.
The next morning dawned very bright and cold. The Great Hall
was full of the delicious smell of fried sausages and the cheer
ful chatter of everyone looking forward to a good Quidditch match.
"You've got to eat some breakfast."
"I don't want anything."
"Just a bit of toast," wheedled Hermione.
"I'm not hungry."
Harry felt terrible. In an hour's time he'd be walking onto
the field.
"Harry, you need your strength," said Seamus Finnigan. "Seekers
are always the ones who get clobbered by the other team."
"Thanks, Seamus," said Harry, watching Seamus pile ketchup on
his sausages.
By eleven o'clock the whole school seemed to be out in the stands
around the Quidditch pitch. Many students had binoculars. The seats
might be raised high in the air, but it was still difficult to see
what was going on sometimes.
Ron and Hermione joined Neville, Seamus, and Dean the West Ham
fan up in the top row. As a surprise for Harry, they had painted
a large banner on one of the sheets Scabbers had ruined. It said
Potter for President, and Dean, who was good at drawing, had done
a large Gryffindor lion underneath. Then Hermione had performed a
tricky little charm so that the paint flashed different colors.
Meanwhile, in the locker room, Harry and the rest of the team
were changing into their scarlet Quidditch robes (Slytherin would
be playing in green).
Wood cleared his throat for silence.
"Okay, men," he said.
"And women," said Chaser Angelina Johnson.
"And women," Wood agreed. "This is it."
"The big one," said Fred Weasley.
"The one we've all been waiting for," said George.
"We know Oliver's speech by heart," Fred told Harry, "we were
on the team last year."
"Shut up, you two," said Wood. "This is the best team
Gryffindor's had in years. We're going to win. I know it."
He glared at them all as if to say, "Or else."
"Right. It's time. Good luck, all of you."
Harry followed Fred and George out of the locker room and,
hoping his knees weren't going to give way, walked onto the field
to loud cheers.
Madam Hooch was refereeing. She stood in the middle of the
field waiting for the two teams, her broom in her hand.
"Now, I want a nice fair game, all of you," she said, once they
were all gathered around her. Harry noticed that she seemed to
be speaking particularly to the Slytherin Captain, Marcus Flint,
a sixth year. Harry thought Flint looked as if he had some troll
blood in him. Out of the corner of his eye he saw the fluttering
banner high above, flashing Potter for President over the crowd. His
heart skipped. He felt braver.
"Mount your brooms, please."
Harry clambered onto his Nimbus Two Thousand.
Madam Hooch gave a loud blast on her silver whistle.
Fifteen brooms rose up, high, high into the air. They were
off. "And the Quaffle is taken immediately by Angelina Johnson of
Gryffindor -- what an excellent Chaser that girl is, and rather
attractive, too --"
"JORDAN!"
"Sorry, Professor."
The Weasley twins' friend, Lee Jordan, was doing the commentary
for the match, closely watched by Professor McGonagall.
"And she's really belting along up there, a neat pass to Alicia
Spinnet, a good find of Oliver Wood's, last year only a reserve --
back to Johnson and -- no, the Slytherins have taken the Quaffle,
Slytherin Captain Marcus Flint gains the Quaffle and off he goes --
Flint flying like an eagle up there -- he's going to sc- no, stopped
by an excellent move by Gryffindor Keeper Wood and the Gryffindors
take the Quaffle -- that's Chaser Katie Bell of Gryffindor there,
nice dive around Flint, off up the field and -- OUCH -- that must
have hurt, hit in the back of the head by a Bludger -- Quaffle taken
by the Slytherins -- that's Adrian Pucey speeding off toward the goal
posts, but he's blocked by a second Bludger -- sent his way by Fred
or George Weasley, can't tell which -- nice play by the Gryffindor
Beater, anyway, and Johnson back in possession of the Quaffle, a
clear field ahead and off she goes -- she's really flying -- dodges
a speeding Bludger -- the goal posts are ahead -- come on, now,
Angelina -- Keeper Bletchley dives -- misses -- GRYFFINDORS SCORE!"
Gryffindor cheers filled the cold air, with howls and moans
from the Slytherins.
"Budge up there, move along."
"Hagrid!"
Ron and Hermione squeezed together to give Hagrid enough space
to join them.
"Bin watchin' from me hut," said Hagrid, patting a large pair
of binoculars around his neck, "But it isn't the same as bein'
in the crowd. No sign of the Snitch yet, eh?"
"Nope," said Ron. "Harry hasn't had much to do yet."
"Kept outta trouble, though, that's somethin'," said Hagrid,
raising his binoculars and peering skyward at the speck that
was Harry.
Way up above them, Harry was gliding over the game, squinting
about for some sign of the Snitch. This was part of his and Wood's
game plan.
"Keep out of the way until you catch sight of the Snitch,"
Wood had said. "We don't want you attacked before you have to be."
When Angelina had scored, Harry had done a couple of
loop-the-loops to let off his feelings. Now he was back to staring
around for the Snitch. Once he caught sight of a flash of gold, but
it was just a reflection from one of the Weasleys' wristwatches,
and once a Bludger decided to come pelting his way, more like a
cannonball than anything, but Harry dodged it and Fred Weasley came
chasing after it.
"All right there, Harry?" he had time to yell, as he beat the
Bludger furiously toward Marcus Flint.
"Slytherin in possession," Lee Jordan was saying, "Chaser Pucey
ducks two Bludgers, two Weasleys, and Chaser Bell, and speeds toward
the -- wait a moment -- was that the Snitch?"
A murmur ran through the crowd as Adrian Pucey dropped the
Quaffle, too busy looking over his shoulder at the flash of gold
that had passed his left ear.
Harry saw it. In a great rush of excitement he dived downward
after the streak of gold. Slytherin Seeker Terence Higgs had seen it,
too. Neck and neck they hurtled toward the Snitch -all the Chasers
seemed to have forgotten what they were supposed to be doing as
they hung in midair to watch.
Harry was faster than Higgs -- he could see the little round
ball, wings fluttering, darting up ahead - - he put on an extra
spurt of speed --
WHAM! A roar of rage echoed from the Gryffindors below --
Marcus Flint had blocked Harry on purpose, and Harry's broom spun
off course, Harry holding on for dear life.
"Foul!" screamed the Gryffindors.
Madam Hooch spoke angrily to Flint and then ordered a free
shot at the goal posts for Gryffindor. But in all the confusion,
of course, the Golden Snitch had disappeared from sight again.
Down in the stands, Dean Thomas was yelling, "Send him off,
ref! Red card!"
"What are you talking about, Dean?" said Ron.
"Red card!" said Dean furiously. "In soccer you get shown the
red card and you're out of the game!"
"But this isn't soccer, Dean," Ron reminded him.
Hagrid, however, was on Dean's side.
"They oughta change the rules. Flint coulda knocked Harry outta
the air."
Lee Jordan was finding it difficult not to take sides.
"So -- after that obvious and disgusting bit of cheating
"Jordan!" growled Professor McGonagall.
"I mean, after that open and revolting foul
'Jordan, I'm warning you --"
"All right, all right. Flint nearly kills the Gryffindor Seeker,
which could happen to anyone, I'm sure, so a penalty to Gryffindor,
taken by Spinner, who puts it away, no trouble, and we continue play,
Gryffindor still in possession."
It was as Harry dodged another Bludger, which went spinning
dangerously past his head, that it happened. His broom gave a
sudden, frightening lurch. For a split second, he thought he was
going to fall. He gripped the broom tightly with both his hands
and knees. He'd never felt anything like that.
It happened again. It was as though the broom was trying to buck
him off. But Nimbus Two Thousands did not suddenly decide to buck
their riders off. Harry tried to turn back toward the Gryffindor
goal- posts -- he had half a mind to ask Wood to call time-out
-- and then he realized that his broom was completely out of his
control. He couldn't turn it. He couldn't direct it at all. It was
zigzagging through the air, and every now and then making violent
swishing movements that almost unseated him.
Lee was still commentating.
"Slytherin in possession -- Flint with the Quaffle -- passes
Spinnet -- passes Bell -- hit hard in the face by a Bludger, hope
it broke his nose -- only joking, Professor -- Slytherins score --
A no...
The Slytherins were cheering. No one seemed to have noticed
that Harry's broom was behaving strangely. It was carrying- him
slowly higher, away from the game, jerking and twitching as it went.
"Dunno what Harry thinks he's doing," Hagrid mumbled. He stared
through his binoculars. "If I didn' know better, I'd say he'd lost
control of his broom... but he can't have...."
Suddenly, people were pointing up at Harry all over the
stands. His broom had started to roll over and over, with him only
just managing to hold on. Then the whole crowd gasped. Harry's broom
had given a wild jerk and Harry swung off it. He was now dangling
from it, holding on with only one hand.
"Did something happen to it when Flint blocked him?" Seamus
whispered.
"Can't have," Hagrid said, his voice shaking. "Can't nothing
interfere with a broomstick except powerful Dark magic -- no kid
could do that to a Nimbus Two Thousand."
At these words, Hermione seized Hagrid's binoculars, but instead
of looking up at Harry, she started looking frantically at the crowd.
"What are you doing?" moaned Ron, gray-faced.
"I knew it," Hermione gasped, "Snape -- look."
Ron grabbed the binoculars. Snape was in the middle of the
stands opposite them. He had his eyes fixed on Harry and was
muttering nonstop under his breath.
"He's doing something -- jinxing the broom," said Hermione.
"What should we do?"
"Leave it to me."
Before Ron could say another word, Hermione had disappeared. Ron
turned the binoculars back on Harry. His broom was vibrating so
hard, it was almost impossible for him to hang on much longer. The
whole crowd was on its feet, watching, terrified, as the Weasleys
flew up to try and pull Harry safely onto one of their brooms, but
it was no good -- every time they got near him, the broom would
jump higher still. They dropped lower and circled beneath him,
obviously hoping to catch him if he fell. Marcus
Flint seized the Quaffle and scored five times without anyone
noticing.
"Come on, Hermione," Ron muttered desperately.
Hermione had fought her way across to the stand where Snape
stood, and was now racing along the row behind him; she didn't even
stop to say sorry as she knocked Professor Quirrell headfirst into
the row in front. Reaching Snape, she crouched down, pulled out her
wand, and whispered a few, well- chosen words. Bright blue flames
shot from her wand onto the hem of Snape's robes.
It took perhaps thirty seconds for Snape to realize that he was
on fire. A sudden yelp told her she had done her job. Scooping the
fire off him into a little jar in her pocket, she scrambled back
along the row -- Snape would never know what had happened.
It was enough. Up in the air, Harry was suddenly able to clamber
back on to his broom.
"Neville, you can look!" Ron said. Neville had been sobbing
into Hagrid's jacket for the last five minutes.
Harry was speeding toward the ground when the crowd saw him
clap his hand to his mouth as though he was about to be sick --
he hit the field on all fours -- coughed -- and something gold fell
into his hand.
"I've got the Snitch!" he shouted, waving it above his head,
and the game ended in complete confusion.
"He didn't catch it, he nearly swallowed it," Flint was still
howling twenty minutes later, but it made no difference -- Harry
hadn't broken any rules and Lee Jordan was still happily shouting
the results -- Gryffindor had won by one hundred and seventy points
to sixty. Harry heard none of this, though. He was being made a
cup of strong tea back in Hagrid's hut, with Ron and Hermione.
"It was Snape," Ron was explaining, "Hermione and I saw him. He
was cursing your broomstick, muttering, he wouldn't take his eyes
off you."
"Rubbish," said Hagrid, who hadn't heard a word of what had
gone on next to him in the stands. "Why would Snape do somethin'
like that?"
Harry, Ron, and Hermione looked at one another, wondering what
to tell him. Harry decided on the truth.
"I found out something about him," he told Hagrid. "He tried to
get past that three-headed dog on Halloween. It bit him. We think
he was trying to steal whatever it's guarding."
Hagrid dropped the teapot.
"How do you know about Fluffy?" he said.
"Fluffy?"
"Yeah -- he's mine -- bought him off a Greek chappie I met in
the pub las' year -- I lent him to Dumbledore to guard the
"Yes?" said Harry eagerly.
"Now, don't ask me anymore," said Hagrid gruffly. "That's top
secret, that is."
"But Snape's trying to steal it."
"Rubbish," said Hagrid again. "Snape's a Hogwarts teacher,
he'd do nothin' of the sort."
"So why did he just try and kill Harry?" cried Hermione.
The afternoon's events certainly seemed to have changed her
mind about Snape.
I know a jinx when I see one, Hagrid, I've read all about them!
You've got to keep eye contact, and Snape wasn't blinking at all,
I saw him!"
"I'm tellin' yeh, yer wrong!" said Hagrid hotly. "I don' know
why Harry's broom acted like that, but Snape wouldn' try an' kill
a student! Now, listen to me, all three of yeh -- yer meddlin'
in things that don' concern yeh. It's dangerous. You forget that
dog, an' you forget what it's guardin', that's between Professor
Dumbledore an' Nicolas Flamel --"
"Aha!" said Harry, "so there's someone called Nicolas Flamel
involved, is there?"
Hagrid looked furious with himself.
CHAPTER TWELVE
THE MIRROR OF ERISED
Christmas was coming. One morning in mid-December, Hogwarts
woke to find itself covered in several feet of snow. The lake froze
solid and the Weasley twins were punished for bewitching several
snowballs so that they followed Quirrell around, bouncing off the
back of his turban. The few owls that managed to battle their way
through the stormy sky to deliver mail had to be nursed back to
health by Hagrid before they could fly off again.
No one could wait for the holidays to start. While the Gryffindor
common room and the Great Hall had roaring fires, the drafty
corridors had become icy and a bitter wind rattled the windows in
the classrooms. Worst of all were Professor Snape's classes down
in the dungeons, where their breath rose in a mist before them and
they kept as close as possible to their hot cauldrons.
"I do feel so sorry," said Draco Malfoy, one Potions class,
"for all those people who have to stay at Hogwarts for Christmas
because they're not wanted at home."
He was looking over at Harry as he spoke. Crabbe and Goyle
chuckled. Harry, who was measuring out powdered spine of lionfish,
ignored them. Malfoy had been even more unpleasant than usual since
the Quidditch match. Disgusted that the Slytherins had lost, he
had tried to get everyone laughing at how a wide-mouthed tree frog
would be replacing Harry as Seeker next. Then he'd realized that
nobody found this funny, because they were all so impressed at the
way Harry had managed to stay on his bucking broomstick. So Malfoy,
jealous and angry, had gone back to taunting Harry about having no
proper family.
It was true that Harry wasn't going back to Privet Drive for
Christmas. Professor McGonagall had come around the week before,
making a list of students who would be staying for the holidays,
and Harry had signed up at once. He didn't feel sorry for himself at
all; this would probably be the best Christmas he'd ever had. Ron
and his brothers were staying, too, because Mr. and Mrs. Weasley
were going to Romania to visit Charlie.
When they left the dungeons at the end of Potions, they found
a large fir tree blocking the corridor ahead. Two enormous feet
sticking out at the bottom and a loud puffing sound told them that
Hagrid was behind it.
"Hi, Hagrid, want any help?" Ron asked, sticking his head
through the branches.
"Nah, I'm all right, thanks, Ron."
"Would you mind moving out of the way?" came Malfoys cold
drawl from behind them. "Are you trying to earn some extra money,
Weasley? Hoping to be gamekeeper yourself when you leave Hogwarts,
I suppose -- that hut of Hagrid's must seem like a palace compared
to what your family's used to."
Ron dived at Malfoy just as Snape came up the stairs.
"WEASLEY!"
Ron let go of the front of Malfoy's robes.
"He was provoked, Professor Snape," said Hagrid, sticking his
huge hairy face out from behind the tree. "Malfoy was insultin'
his family."
"Be that as it may, fighting is against Hogwarts rules, Hagrid,"
said Snape silkily. "Five points from Gryffindor, Weasley, and be
grateful it isn't more. Move along, all of you."
Malfoy, Crabbe, and Goyle pushed roughly past the tree,
scattering needles everywhere and smirking.
"I'll get him," said Ron, grinding his teeth at Malfoy's back,
"one of these days, I'll get him --"
"I hate them both," said Harry, "Malfoy and Snape."
"Come on, cheer up, it's nearly Christmas," said Hagrid. "Tell
yeh what, come with me an' see the Great Hall, looks a treat."
So the three of them followed Hagrid and his tree off to -the
Great Hall, where Professor McGonagall and Professor Flitwick were
busy with the Christmas decorations.
"Ah, Hagrid, the last tree -- put it in the far corner,
would you?"
The hall looked spectacular. Festoons of holly and mistletoe hung
all around the walls, and no less than twelve towering Christmas
trees stood around the room, some sparkling with tiny icicles,
some glittering with hundreds of candles.
"How many days you got left until yer holidays?" Hagrid asked.
"Just one," said Hermione. "And that reminds me -Harry, Ron,
we've got half an hour before lunch, we should be in the library."
"Oh yeah, you're right," said Ron, tearing his eyes away from
Professor Flitwick, who had golden bubbles blossoming out of his
wand and was trailing them over the branches of the new tree.
"The library?" said Hagrid, following them out of the hall. "Just
before the holidays? Bit keen, aren't yeh?"
"Oh, we're not working," Harry told him brightly. "Ever since you
mentioned Nicolas Flamel we've been trying to find out who he is."
"You what?" Hagrid looked shocked. "Listen here -- I've told
yeh -- drop it. It's nothin' to you what that dog's guardin'."
"We just want to know who Nicolas Flamel is, that's all,"
said Hermione.
"Unless you'd like to tell us and save us the trouble?" Harry
added. "We must've been through hundreds of books already and we
can't find him anywhere -- just give us a hint -- I know I've read
his name somewhere."
"I'm sayin' nothin, said Hagrid flatly.
"Just have to find out for ourselves, then," said Ron, and they
left Hagrid looking disgruntled and hurried off to the library.
They had indeed been searching books for Flamel's name ever
since Hagrid had let it slip, because how else were they going to
find out what Snape was trying to steal? The trouble was, it was
very hard to know where to begin, not knowing what Flamel might
have done to get himself into a book. He wasn't in Great Wizards
of the Twentieth Century, or Notable Magical Names of Our Time;
he was missing, too, from Important Modern Magical Discoveries,
and A Study of Recent Developments in Wizardry. And then, of course,
there was the sheer size of the library; tens of thousands of books;
thousands of shelves; hundreds of narrow rows.
Hermione took out a list of subjects and titles she had
decided to search while Ron strode off down a row of books and
started pulling them off the shelves at random. Harry wandered
over to the Restricted Section. He had been wondering for a while
if Flamel wasn't somewhere in there. Unfortunately, you needed a
specially signed note from one of the teachers to look in any of
the restricted books, and he knew he'd never get one. These were
the books containing powerful Dark Magic never taught at Hogwarts,
and only read by older students studying advanced Defense Against
the Dark Arts.
"What are you looking for, boy?"
"Nothing," said Harry.
Madam Pince the librarian brandished a feather duster at him.
"You'd better get out, then. Go on -- out!"
Wishing he'd been a bit quicker at thinking up some story,
Harry left the library. He, Ron, and Hermione had already agreed
they'd better not ask Madam Pince where they could find Flamel. They
were sure she'd be able to tell them, but they couldn't risk Snape
hearing what they were up to.
Harry waited outside in the corridor to see if the other two had
found anything, but he wasn't very hopeful. They had been looking
for two weeks, after A, but as they only had odd moments between
lessons it wasn't surprising they'd found nothing. What they really
needed was a nice long search without Madam Pince breathing down
their necks.
Five minutes later, Ron and Hermione joined him, shaking their
heads. They went off to lunch.
"You will keep looking while I'm away, won't you?" said
Hermione. "And send me an owl if you find anything."
"And you could ask your parents if they know who Flamel is,"
said Ron. "It'd be safe to ask them."
"Very safe, as they're both dentists," said Hermione.
Once the holidays had started, Ron and Harry were having too
good a time to think much about Flamel. They had the dormitory to
themselves and the common room was far emptier than usual, so they
were able to get the good armchairs by the fire. They sat by the
hour eating anything they could spear on a toasting fork -- bread,
English muffins, marshmallows -- and plotting ways of getting Malfoy
expelled, which were fun to talk about even if they wouldn't work.
Ron also started teaching Harry wizard chess. This was exactly
like Muggle chess except that the figures were alive, which made
it a lot like directing troops in battle. Ron's set was very old
and battered. Like everything else he owned, it had once belonged to
someone else in his family -- in this case, his grandfather. However,
old chessmen weren't a drawback at all. Ron knew them so well he
never had trouble getting them to do what he wanted.
Harry played with chessmen Seamus Finnigan had lent him, and
they didn't trust him at all. He wasn't a very good player yet
and they kept shouting different bits of advice at him, which was
confusing. "Don't send me there, can't you see his knight? Send him,
we can afford to lose him." On Christmas Eve, Harry went to bed
looking forward to the next day for the food and the fun, but not
expecting any presents at all. When he woke early in the morning,
however, the first thing he saw was a small pile of packages at
the foot of his bed.
"Merry Christmas," said Ron sleepily as Harry scrambled out of
bed and pulled on his bathrobe.
"You, too," said Harry. "Will you look at this? I've got some
presents!"
"What did you expect, turnips?" said Ron, turning to his own
pile, which was a lot bigger than Harry's.
Harry picked up the top parcel. It was wrapped in thick brown
paper and scrawled across it was To Harry, from Hagrid. Inside
was a roughly cut wooden flute. Hagrid had obviously whittled it
himself. Harry blew it -- it sounded a bit like an owl.
A second, very small parcel contained a note.
We received your message and enclose your Christmas present. From
Uncle Vernon and Aunt Petunia. Taped to the note was a fifty-pence
piece.
"That's friendly," said Harry.
Ron was fascinated by the fifty pence.
"Weird!" he said, 'NMat a shape! This is money?"
"You can keep it," said Harry, laughing at how pleased Ron
was. "Hagrid and my aunt and uncle -- so who sent these?"
"I think I know who that one's from," said Ron, turning a bit
pink and pointing to a very lumpy parcel. "My mom. I told her you
didn't expect any presents and -- oh, no," he groaned, "she's made
you a Weasley sweater."
Harry had torn open the parcel to find a thick, hand-knitted
sweater in emerald green and a large box of homemade fudge.
"Every year she makes us a sweater," said Ron, unwrapping his
own, "and mine's always maroon."
"That's really nice of her," said Harry, trying the fudge,
which was very tasty.
His next present also contained candy -- a large box of Chocolate
Frogs from Hermione.
This only left one parcel. Harry picked it up and felt it. It
was very light. He unwrapped it.
Something fluid and silvery gray went slithering to the floor
where it lay in gleaming folds. Ron gasped.
"I've heard of those," he said in a hushed voice, dropping the
box of Every Flavor Beans he'd gotten from Hermione. "If that's
what I think it is -- they're really rare, and really valuable."
"What is it?"
Harry picked the shining, silvery cloth off the floor. It was
strange to the touch, like water woven into material.
"It's an invisibility cloak," said Ron, a look of awe on his
face. "I'm sure it is -- try it on."
Harry threw the cloak around his shoulders and Ron gave a yell.
"It is! Look down!"
Harry looked down at his feet, but they were gone. He dashed to
the mirror. Sure enough, his reflection looked back at him, just his
head suspended in midair, his body completely invisible. He pulled
the cloak over his head and his reflection vanished completely.
"There's a note!" said Ron suddenly. "A note fell out of it!"
Harry pulled off the cloak and seized the letter. Written in
narrow, loopy writing he had never seen before were the following
words: Your father left this in my possession before he died. It
is time it was returned to you. Use it well.
A Very Merry Christmas to you.
There was no signature. Harry stared at the note. Ron was
admiring the cloak.
"I'd give anything for one of these," he said. "Anything. What's
the matter?"
"Nothing," said Harry. He felt very strange. Who had sent the
cloak? Had it really once belonged to his father?
Before he could say or think anything else, the dormitory door
was flung open and Fred and George Weasley bounded in. Harry stuffed
the cloak quickly out of sight. He didn't feel like sharing it with
anyone else yet.
"Merry Christmas!"
"Hey, look -- Harry's got a Weasley sweater, too!"
Fred and George were wearing blue sweaters, one with a large
yellow F on it, the other a G.
"Harry's is better than ours, though," said Fred, holding up
Harry's sweater. "She obviously makes more of an effort if you're
not family."
"Why aren't you wearing yours, Ron?" George demanded. "Come on,
get it on, they're lovely and warm."
"I hate maroon," Ron moaned halfheartedly as he pulled it over
his head.
"You haven't got a letter on yours," George observed. "I suppose
she thinks you don't forget your name. But we're not stupid --
we know we're called Gred and Forge."
"What's all th is noise.
Percy Weasley stuck his head through the door, looking
disapproving. He had clearly gotten halfway through unwrapping his
presents as he, too, carried a lumpy sweater over his arm, which
Fred seized.
"P for prefect! Get it on, Percy, come on, we're all wearing
ours, even Harry got one."
"I -- don't -- want said Percy thickly, as the twins forced
the sweater over his head, knocking his glasses askew.
"And you're not sitting with the prefects today, either," said
George. "Christmas is a time for family."
They frog-marched Percy from the room, his arms pinned to his
side by his sweater.
Harry had never in all his life had such a Christmas dinner. A
hundred fat, roast turkeys; mountains of roast and boiled potatoes;
platters of chipolatas; tureens of buttered peas, silver boats
of thick, rich gravy and cranberry sauce -- and stacks of wizard
crackers every few feet along the table. These fantastic party
favors were nothing like the feeble Muggle ones the Dursleys usually
bought, with their little plastic toys and their flimsy paper hats
inside. Harry pulled a wizard cracker with Fred and it didn't just
bang, it went off with a blast like a cannon and engulfed them all
in a cloud of blue smoke, while from the inside exploded a rear
admiral's hat and several live, white mice. Up at the High Table,
Dumbledore had swapped his pointed wizard's hat for a flowered
bonnet, and was chuckling merrily at a joke Professor Flitwick had
just read him.
Flaming Christmas puddings followed the turkey. Percy nearly
broke his teeth on a silver sickle embedded in his slice. Harry
watched Hagrid getting redder and redder in the face as he called
for more wine, finally kissing Professor McGonagall on the cheek,
who, to Harry's amazement, giggled and blushed, her top hat lopsided.
When Harry finally left the table, he was laden down with a stack
of things out of the crackers, including a pack of nonexplodable,
luminous balloons, a Grow-Your-Own-Warts kit, and his own new wizard
chess set. The white mice had disappeared and Harry had a nasty
feeling they were going to end up as Mrs. Norris's Christmas dinner.
Harry and the Weasleys spent a happy afternoon having a furious
snowball fight on the grounds. Then, cold, wet, and gasping for
breath, they returned to the fire in the Gryffindor common room,
where Harry broke in his new chess set by losing spectacularly to
Ron. He suspected he wouldn't have lost so badly if Percy hadn't
tried to help him so much.
After a meal of turkey sandwiches, crumpets, trifle, and
Christmas cake, everyone felt too full and sleepy to do much
before bed except sit and watch Percy chase Fred and George all
over Gryffindor tower because they'd stolen his prefect badge.
It had been Harry's best Christmas day ever. Yet something had
been nagging at the back of his mind all day. Not until he climbed
into bed was he free to think about it: the invisibility cloak and
whoever had sent it.
Ron, full of turkey and cake and with nothing mysterious to
bother him, fell asleep almost as soon as he'd drawn the curtains
of his four-poster. Harry leaned over the side of his own bed and
pulled the cloak out from under it.
His father's... this had been his father's. He let the material
flow over his hands, smoother than silk, light as air. Use it well,
the note had said.
He had to try it, now. He slipped out of bed and wrapped the
cloak around himself. Looking down at his legs, he saw only moonlight
and shadows. It was a very funny feeling.
Use it well.
Suddenly, Harry felt wide-awake. The whole of Hogwarts was
open to him in this cloak. Excitement flooded through him as he
stood there in the dark and silence. He could go anywhere in this,
anywhere, and Filch would never know.
Ron grunted in his sleep. Should Harry wake him? Something
held him back -- his father's cloak -- he felt that this time --
the first time -- he wanted to use it alone.
He crept out of the dormitory, down the stairs, across the
common room, and climbed through the portrait hole.
"Who's there?" squawked the Fat Lady. Harry said nothing. He
walked quickly down the corridor.
Where should he go? He stopped, his heart racing, and
thought. And then it came to him. The Restricted Section in the
library. He'd be able to read as long as he liked, as long as it
took to find out who Flamel was. He set off, drawing the invisibility
cloak tight around him as he walked.
The library was pitch-black and very eerie. Harry lit a lamp
to see his way along the rows of books. The lamp looked as if it
was floating along in midair, and even though Harry could feel his
arm supporting it, the sight gave him the creeps.
The Restricted Section was right at the back of the library. Step
ping carefully over the rope that separated these books from the
rest of the library, he held up his lamp to read the titles.
They didn't tell him much. Their peeling, faded gold letters
spelled words in languages Harry couldn't understand. Some had no
title at all. One book had a dark stain on it that looked horribly
like blood. The hairs on the back of Harry's neck prickled. Maybe
he was imagining it, maybe not, but he thought a faint whispering
was coming from the books, as though they knew someone was there
who shouldn't be.
He had to start somewhere. Setting the lamp down carefully on the
floor, he looked along the bottom shelf for an interestinglooking
book. A large black and silver volume caught his eye. He pulled it
out with difficulty, because it was very heavy, and, balancing it
on his knee, let it fall open.
A piercing, bloodcurdling shriek split the silence -- the book
was screaming! Harry snapped it shut, but the shriek went on and
on, one high, unbroken, earsplitting note. He stumbled backward
and knocked over his lamp, which went out at once. Panicking, he
heard footsteps coming down the corridor outside -- stuffing the
shrieking book back on the shelf, he ran for it. He passed Filch in
the doorway; Filch's pale, wild eyes looked straight through him,
and Harry slipped under Filch's outstretched arm and streaked off
up the corridor, the book's shrieks still ringing in his ears.
He came to a sudden halt in front of a tall suit of armor. He
had been so busy getting away from the library, he hadn't paid
attention to where he was going. Perhaps because it was dark, he
didn't recognize where he was at all. There was a suit of armor
near the kitchens, he knew, but he must be five floors above there.
"You asked me to come directly to you, Professor, if anyone
was wandering around at night, and somebody's been in the library
Restricted Section."
Harry felt the blood drain out of his face. Wherever he was,
Filch must know a shortcut, because his soft, greasy voice was
getting nearer, and to his horror, it was Snape who replied,
"The Restricted Section? Well, they can't be far, we'll catch them."
Harry stood rooted to the spot as Filch and Snape came around
the corner ahead. They couldn't see him, of course, but it was a
narrow corridor and if they came much nearer they'd knock right
into him -- the cloak didn't stop him from being solid.
He backed away as quietly as he could. A door stood ajar to
his left. It was his only hope. He squeezed through it, holding
his breath, trying not to move it, and to his relief he managed to
get inside the room without their noticing anything. They walked
straight past, and Harry leaned against the wall, breathing deeply,
listening to their footsteps dying away. That had been close, very
close. It was a few seconds before he noticed anything about the
room he had hidden in.
It looked like an unused classroom. The dark shapes of desks
and chairs were piled against the walls, and there was an upturned
wastepaper basket -- but propped against the wall facing him was
something that didn't look as if it belonged there, something that
looked as if someone had just put it there to keep it out of the way.
It was a magnificent mirror, as high as the ceiling, with
an ornate gold frame, standing on two clawed feet. There was an
inscription carved around the top: Erised stra ehru oyt ube cafru
oyt on wohsi. His panic fading now that there was no sound of Filch
and Snape, Harry moved nearer to the mirror, wanting to look at
himself but see no reflection again. He stepped in front of it.
He had to clap his hands to his mouth to stop himself from
screaming. He whirled around. His heart was pounding far more
furiously than when the book had screamed -- for he had seen not
only himself in the mirror, but a whole crowd of people standing
right behind him.
But the room was empty. Breathing very fast, he turned slowly
back to the mirror.
There he was, reflected in it, white and scared-looking, and
there, reflected behind him, were at least ten others. Harry looked
over his shoulder -- but still, no one was there. Or were they all
invisible, too? Was he in fact in a room full of invisible people
and this mirror's trick was that it reflected them, invisible or not?
He looked in the mirror again. A woman standing right behind his
reflection was smiling at him and waving. He reached out a hand and
felt the air behind him. If she was really there, he'd touch her,
their reflections were so close together, but he felt only air --
she and the others existed only in the mirror.
She was a very pretty woman. She had dark red hair and her eyes
-- her eyes are just like mine, Harry thought, edging a little
closer to the glass. Bright green -- exactly the same shape,
but then he noticed that she was crying; smiling, but crying at
the same time. The tall, thin, black-haired man standing next to
her put his arm around her. He wore glasses, and his hair was very
untidy. It stuck up at the back, just as Harry's did.
Harry was so close to the mirror now that his nose was nearly
touching that of his reflection.
"Mom?" he whispered. "Dad?"
They just looked at him, smiling. And slowly, Harry looked
into the faces of the other people in the mirror, and saw other
pairs of green eyes like his, other noses like his, even a little
old man who looked as though he had Harry's knobbly knees -- Harry
was looking at his family, for the first time in his life.
The Potters smiled and waved at Harry and he stared hungrily
back at them, his hands pressed flat against the glass as though
he was hoping to fall right through it and reach them. He had a
powerful kind of ache inside him, half joy, half terrible sadness.
How long he stood there, he didn't know. The reflections did not
fade and he looked and looked until a distant noise brought him back
to his senses. He couldn't stay here, he had to find his way back
to bed. He tore his eyes away from his mother's face, whispered,
"I'll come back," and hurried from the room.
"You could have woken me up," said Ron, crossly.
"You can come tonight, I'm going back, I want to show you
the mirror.
"I'd like to see your mom and dad," Ron said eagerly.
"And I want to see all your family, all the Weasleys, you'll
be able to show me your other brothers and everyone."
"You can see them any old time," said Ron. "Just come round my
house this summer. Anyway, maybe it only shows dead people. Shame
about not finding Flamel, though. Have some bacon or something,
why aren't you eating anything?"
Harry couldn't eat. He had seen his parents and would be seeing
them again tonight. He had almost forgotten about Flamel. It didn't
seem very important anymore. Who cared what the three headed dog
was guarding? What did it matter if Snape stole it, really?
"Are you all right?" said Ron. "You look odd."
What Harry feared most was that he might not be able to find the
mirror room again. With Ron covered in the cloak, too, they had to
walk much more slowly the next night. They tried retracing Harry's
route from the library, wandering around the dark passageways for
nearly an hour.
"I'm freezing," said Ron. "Let's forget it and go back."
"No!" Harry hissed. I know it's here somewhere."
They passed the ghost of a tall witch gliding in the opposite
direction, but saw no one else. just as Ron started moaning that
his feet were dead with cold, Harry spotted the suit of armor.
"It's here -- just here -- yes!"
They pushed the door open. Harry dropped the cloak from around
his shoulders and ran to the mirror.
There they were. His mother and father beamed at the sight
of him.
"See?" Harry whispered.
"I can't see anything."
"Look! Look at them all... there are loads of them...."
"I can only see you."
"Look in it properly, go on, stand where I am."
Harry stepped aside, but with Ron in front of the mirror,
he couldn't see his family anymore, just Ron in his paisley pajamas.
Ron, though, was staring transfixed at his image.
"Look at me!" he said.
"Can you see all your family standing around you?"
"No -- I'm alone -- but I'm different -- I look older -- and
I'm head boy!"
"What?"
"I am -- I'm wearing the badge like Bill used to -- and I'm
holding the house cup and the Quidditch cup -- I'm Quidditch
captain, too.
Ron tore his eyes away from this splendid sight to look excitedly
at Harry.
"Do you think this mirror shows the future?"
"How can it? All my family are dead -- let me have another
look --"
"You had it to yourself all last night, give me a bit more time."
"You're only holding the Quidditch cup, what's interesting
about that? I want to see my parents."
"Don't push me --"
A sudden noise outside in the corridor put an end to their
discussion. They hadn't realized how loudly they had been talking.
"Quick!"
Ron threw the cloak back over them as the luminous eyes of
Mrs. Norris came round the door. Ron and Harry stood quite still,
both thinking the same thing -- did the cloak work on cats? After
what seemed an age, she turned and left.
"This isn't safe -- she might have gone for Filch, I bet she
heard us. Come on."
And Ron pulled Harry out of the room.
The snow still hadn't melted the next morning.
"Want to play chess, Harry?" said Ron.
"No."
"Why don't we go down and visit Hagrid?"
"No... you go..."
"I know what you're thinking about, Harry, that mirror. Don't
go back tonight."
"Why not?"
"I dunno, I've just got a bad feeling about it -- and
anyway, you've had too many close shaves already. Filch, Snape,
and Mrs. Norris are wandering around. So what if they can't see
you? What if they walk into you? What if you knock something over?"
"You sound like Hermione."
"I'm serious, Harry, don't go."
But Harry only had one thought in his head, which was to get
back in front of the mirror, and Ron wasn't going to stop him.
That third night he found his way more quickly than before. He
was walking so fast he knew he was making more noise than was wise,
but he didn't meet anyone.
And there were his mother and father smiling at him again,
and one of his grandfathers nodding happily. Harry sank down to sit
on the floor in front of the mirror. There was nothing to stop him
from staying here all night with his family. Nothing at all.
Except --
"So -- back again, Harry?"
Harry felt as though his insides had turned to ice. He looked
behind him. Sitting on one of the desks by the wall was none other
than Albus Dumbledore. Harry must have walked straight past him,
so desperate to get to the mirror he hadn't noticed him.
" -- I didn't see you, sir."
"Strange how nearsighted being invisible can make you," said
Dumbledore, and Harry was relieved to see that he was smiling.
"So," said Dumbledore, slipping off the desk to sit on the
floor with Harry, "you, like hundreds before you, have discovered
the delights of the Mirror of Erised."
"I didn't know it was called that, Sir."
"But I expect you've realized by now what it does?"
"It -- well -- it shows me my family --"
"And it showed your friend Ron himself as head boy."
"How did you know --?"
"I don't need a cloak to become invisible," said Dumbledore
gently. "Now, can you think what the Mirror of Erised shows us all?"
Harry shook his head.
"Let me explain. The happiest man on earth would be able to
use the Mirror of Erised like a normal mirror, that is, he would
look into it and see himself exactly as he is. Does that help?"
Harry thought. Then he said slowly, "It shows us what we
want... whatever we want..."
"Yes and no," said Dumbledore quietly. "It shows us nothing
more or less than the deepest, most desperate desire of our
hearts. You, who have never known your family, see them standing
around you. Ronald Weasley, who has always been overshadowed
by his brothers, sees himself standing alone, the best of all
of them. However, this mirror will give us neither knowledge or
truth. Men have wasted away before it, entranced by what they have
seen, or been driven mad, not knowing if what it shows is real or
even possible.
"The Mirror will be moved to a new home tomorrow, Harry, and I
ask you not to go looking for it again. If you ever do run across
it, you will now be prepared. It does not do to dwell on dreams
and forget to live, remember that. Now, why don't you put that
admirable cloak back on and get off to bed?"
Harry stood up.
"Sir -- Professor Dumbledore? Can I ask you something?"
"Obviously, you've just done so," Dumbledore smiled. "You may
ask me one more thing, however."
"What do you see when you look in the mirror?"
"I? I see myself holding a pair of thick, woolen socks."
Harry stared.
"One can never have enough socks," said Dumbledore. "Another
Christmas has come and gone and I didn't get a single pair. People
will insist on giving me books."
It was only when he was back in bed that it struck Harry that
Dumbledore might not have been quite truthful. But then, he thought,
as he shoved Scabbers off his pillow, it had been quite a personal
question.
CHAPTER THIRTEEN
NICOLAS FLAMEL
Dumbledore had convinced Harry not to go looking for the Mirror
of Erised again, and for the rest of the Christmas holidays the
invisibility cloak stayed folded at the bottom of his trunk. Harry
wished he could forget what he'd seen in the mirror as easily, but
he couldn't. He started having nightmares. Over and over again he
dreamed about his parents disappearing in a flash of green light,
while a high voice cackled with laughter.
"You see, Dumbledore was right, that mirror could drive you mad,"
said Ron, when Harry told him about these drearns.
Hermione, who came back the day before term started, took a
different view of things. She was torn between horror at the idea
of Harry being out of bed, roaming the school three nights in a row
("If Filch had caught you!"), and disappointment that he hadn't at
least found out who Nicolas Flamel was.
They had almost given up hope of ever finding Flamel in a li-
brary book, even though Harry was still sure he'd read the name
somewhere. Once term had started, they were back to skimming through
books for ten minutes during their breaks. Harry had even less time
than the other two, because Quidditch practice had started again.
Wood was working the team harder than ever. Even the endless
rain that had replaced the snow couldn't dampen his spirits. The
Weasleys complained that Wood was becoming a fanatic, but Harry was
on Wood's side. If they won their next match, against Hufflepuff,
they would overtake Slytherin in the house championship for the first
time in seven years. Quite apart from wanting to win, Harry found
that he had fewer nightmares when he was tired out after training.
Then, during one particularly wet and muddy practice session,
Wood gave the team a bit of bad news. He'd just gotten very angry
with the Weasleys, who kept dive-bombing each other and pretending
to fall off their brooms.
"Will you stop messing around!" he yelled. "That's exactly
the sort of thing that'll lose us the match! Snape's refereeing
this time, and he'll be looking for any excuse to knock points
off Gryffindor!"
George Weasley really did fall off his broom at these words.
"Snape's refereeing?" he spluttered through a mouthful of
mud. "When's he ever refereed a Quidditch match? He's not going to
be fair if we might overtake Slytherin."
The rest of the team landed next to George to complain, too.
"It's not my fault," said Wood. "We've just got to make sure
we play a clean game, so Snape hasn't got an excuse to pick on us."
Which was all very well, thought Harry, but he had another reason
for not wanting Snape near him while he was playing Quidditch....
The rest of the team hung back to talk to one another as usual
at the end of practice, but Harry headed straight back to the
Gryffindor common room, where he found Ron and Hermione playing
chess. Chess was the only thing Hermione ever lost at, something
Harry and Ron thought was very good for her.
"Don't talk to me for a moment," said Ron when Harry sat down
next to him, "I need to concen --" He caught sight of Harry's
face. "What's the matter with you? You look terrible."
Speaking quietly so that no one else would hear, Harry told the
other two about Snape's sudden, sinister desire to be a Quidditch
referee.
"Don't play," said Hermione at once.
"Say you're ill," said Ron.
"Pretend to break your leg," Hermione suggested.
"Really break your leg," said Ron.
"I can't," said Harry. "There isn't a reserve Seeker. If I back
out, Gryffindor can't play at all."
At that moment Neville toppled into the common room. How he
had managed to climb through the portrait hole was anyone's guess,
because his legs had been stuck together with what they recognized
at once as the Leg-Locker Curse. He must have had to bunny hop all
the way up to Gryffindor tower.
Everyone fell over laughing except Hermione, who leapt up and
performed the countercurse. Neville's legs sprang apart and he
got to his feet, trembling. "What happened?" Hermione asked him,
leading him over to sit with Harry and Ron.
"Malfoy," said Neville shakily. "I met him outside the
library. He said he'd been looking for someone to practice that on."
"Go to Professor McGonagall!" Hermione urged Neville. "Report
him!"
Neville shook his head.
"I don't want more trouble," he mumbled.
"You've got to stand up to him, Neville!" said Ron. "He's used
to walking all over people, but that's no reason to lie down in
front of him and make it easier."
"There's no need to tell me I'm not brave enough to be in
Gryffindor, Malfoy's already done that," Neville choked out.
Harry felt in the pocket of his robes and pulled out a Chocolate
Frog, the very last one from the box Hermione had given him for
Christmas. He gave it to Neville, who looked as though he might cry.
"You're worth twelve of Malfoy," Harry said. "The Sorting
Hat chose you for Gryffindor, didn't it? And where's Malfoy? In
stinking Slytherin."
Neville's lips twitched in a weak smile as he unwrapped the frog.
"Thanks, Harry... I think I'll go to bed.... D'you want the card,
you collect them, don't you?"
As Neville walked away, Harry looked at the Famous Wizard card.
"Dumbledore again," he said, "He was the first one I ever-"
He gasped. He stared at the back of the card. Then he looked
up at Ron and Hermione.
"I've found him!" he whispered. "I've found Flamel! I told you
I'd read the name somewhere before, I read it on the train coming
here -- listen to this: 'Dumbledore is particularly famous for his
defeat of the dark wizard Grindelwald in 1945, for the discovery
of the twelve uses of dragon's blood, and his work on alchemy with
his partner, Nicolas Flamel'!"
Hermione jumped to her feet. She hadn't looked so excited since
they'd gotten back the marks for their very first piece of homework.
"Stay there!" she said, and she sprinted up the stairs to
the girls' dormitories. Harry and Ron barely had time to exchange
mystified looks before she was dashing back, an enormous old book
in her arms.
"I never thought to look in here!" she whispered excitedly. "I
got this out of the library weeks ago for a bit of light reading."
"Light?" said Ron, but Hermione told him to be quiet until she'd
looked something up, and started flicking frantically through the
pages, muttering to herself.
At last she found what she was looking for.
"I knew it! I knew it!"
"Are we allowed to speak yet?" said Ron grumpily. Hermione
ignored him.
"Nicolas Flamel," she whispered dramatically, "is the only
known maker of the Sorcerer's Stone!"
This didn't have quite the effect she'd expected.
"The what?" said Harry and Ron.
"Oh, honestly, don't you two read? Look -- read that, there."
She pushed the book toward them, and Harry and Ron read: The
ancient study of alchemy is concerned with making the Sorcerer's
Stone, a legendary substance with astonishing powers. The stone will
transform any metal into pure gold. It also produces the Elixir of
Life, which will make the drinker immortal.
There have been many reports of the Sorcerer's Stone over the
centuries, but the only Stone currently in existence belongs to
Mr. Nicolas Flamel, the noted alchemist and opera lover. Mr. Flamel,
who celebrated his six hundred and sixty-fifth birthday last year,
enjoys a quiet life in Devon with his wife, Perenelle (six hundred
and fifty-eight).
"See?" said Hermione, when Harry and Ron had finished. "The dog
must be guarding Flamel's Sorcerer's Stone! I bet he asked Dumbledore
to keep it safe for him, because they're friends and he knew someone
was after it, that's why he wanted the Stone moved out of Gringotts!"
"A stone that makes gold and stops you from ever dying!" said
Harry. "No wonder Snape's after it! Anyone would want it."
"And no wonder we couldn't find Flamel in that Study of Recent
Developments in Wizardry," said Ron. "He's not exactly recent if
he's six hundred and sixty-five, is he?"
The next morning in Defense Against the Dark Arts, while copying
down different ways of treating werewolf bites, Harry and Ron were
still discussing what they'd do with a Sorcerer's Stone if they had
one. It wasn't until Ron said he'd buy his own Quidditch team that
Harry remembered about Snape and the coming match.
"I'm going to play," he told Ron and Hermione. "If I don't, all
the Slytherins will think I'm just too scared to face Snape. I'll
show them... it'll really wipe the smiles off their faces if we win."
"Just as long as we're not wiping you off the field," said
Hermione.
As the match drew nearer, however, Harry became more and more
nervous, whatever he told Ron and Hermione. The rest of the team
wasn't too calm, either. The idea of overtaking Slytherin in the
house championship was wonderful, no one had done it for seven years,
but would they be allowed to, with such a biased referee?
Harry didn't know whether he was imagining it or not, but
he seemed to keep running into Snape wherever he went. At times,
he even wondered whether Snape was following him, trying to catch
him on his own. Potions lessons were turning into a sort of weekly
torture, Snape was so horrible to Harry. Could Snape possibly know
they'd found out about the Sorcerer's Stone? Harry didn't see how
he could -- yet he sometimes had the horrible feeling that Snape
could read minds.
Harry knew, when they wished him good luck outside the locker
rooms the next afternoon, that Ron and Hermione were wondering
whether they'd ever see him alive again. This wasn't what you'd
call comforting. Harry hardly heard a word of Wood's pep talk as he
pulled on his Quidditch robes and picked up his Nimbus Two Thousand.
Ron and Hermione, meanwhile, had found a place in the stands
next to Neville, who couldn't understand why they looked so
grim and worried, or why they had both brought their wands to the
match. Little did Harry know that Ron and Hermione had been secretly
practicing the Leg-Locker Curse. They'd gotten the idea from Malfoy
using it on Neville, and were ready to use it on Snape if he showed
any sign of wanting to hurt Harry.
"Now, don't forget, it's Locomotor Mortis," Hermione muttered
as Ron slipped his wand up his sleeve.
"I know," Ron snapped. "Don't nag."
Back in the locker room, Wood had taken Harry aside.
"Don't want to pressure you, Potter, but if we ever need an
early capture of the Snitch it's now. Finish the game before Snape
can favor Hufflepuff too much."
"The whole school's out there!" said Fred Weasley, peering out
of the door. "Even -- blimey -- Dumbledore's come to watch!"
Harry's heart did a somersault.
"Dumbledore?" he said, dashing to the door to make sure. Fred
was right. There was no mistaking that silver beard.
Harry could have laughed out loud with relief He was safe. There
was simply no way that Snape would dare to try to hurt him if
Dumbledore was watching.
Perhaps that was why Snape was looking so angry as the teams
marched onto the field, something that Ron noticed, too.
"I've never seen Snape look so mean," he told Hermione. "Look
-they're off Ouch!"
Someone had poked Ron in the back of the head. It was Malfoy.
"Oh, sorry, Weasley, didn't see you there."
Malfoy grinned broadly at Crabbe and Goyle.
"Wonder how long Potter's going to stay on his broom this
time? Anyone want a bet? What about you, Weasley?"
Ron didn't answer; Snape had just awarded Hufflepuff a penalty
because George Weasley had hit a Bludger at him. Hermione, who had
all her fingers crossed in her lap, was squinting fixedly at Harry,
who was circling the game like a hawk, looking for the Snitch.
"You know how I think they choose people for the Gryffindor
team?" said Malfoy loudly a few minutes later, as Snape awarded
Hufflepuff another penalty for no reason at all. "It's people
they feel sorry for. See, there's Potter, who's got no parents,
then there's the Weasleys, who've got no money -- you should be on
the team, Longbottom, you've got no brains."
Neville went bright red but turned in his seat to face Malfoy.
"I'm worth twelve of you, Malfoy," he stammered.
Malfoy, Crabbe, and Goyle howled with laughter, but Ron, still
not daring to take his eyes from the game, said, "You tell him,
Neville."
"Longbottom, if brains were gold you'd be poorer than Weasley,
and that's saying something."
Ron's nerves were already stretched to the breaking point with
anxiety about Harry.
"I'm warning you, Malfoy -- one more word
"Ron!" said Hermione suddenly, "Harry --"
"What? Where?"
Harry had suddenly gone into a spectacular dive, which drew gasps
and cheers from the crowd. Hermione stood up, her crossed fingers
in her mouth, as Harry streaked toward the ground like a bullet.
"You're in luck, Weasley, Potter's obviously spotted some money
on the ground!" said Malfoy.
Ron snapped. Before Malfoy knew what was happening, Ron was
on top of him, wrestling him to the ground. Neville hesitated,
then clambered over the back of his seat to help.
"Come on, Harry!" Hermione screamed, leaping onto her seat to
watch as Harry sped straight at Snape -- she didn't even notice
Malfoy and Ron rolling around under her seat, or the scuffles and
yelps coming from the whirl of fists that was Neville, Crabbe,
and Goyle.
Up in the air, Snape turned on his broomstick just in time
to see something scarlet shoot past him, missing him by inches --
the next second, Harry had pulled out of the dive, his arm raised
in triumph, the Snitch clasped in his hand.
The stands erupted; it had to be a record, no one could ever
remember the Snitch being caught so quickly.
"Ron! Ron! Where are you? The game's over! Harry's won! We've
won! Gryffindor is in the lead!" shrieked Hermione, dancing up and
down on her seat and hugging Parvati Patil in the row in front.
Harry jumped off his broom, a foot from the ground. He couldn't
believe it. He'd done it -- the game was over; it had barely lasted
five minutes. As Gryffindors came spilling onto the field, he saw
Snape land nearby, white-faced and tight-lipped -- then Harry felt
a hand on his shoulder and looked up into Dumbledore's smiling face.
"Well done," said Dumbledore quietly, so that only Harry
could hear. "Nice to see you haven't been brooding about that
mirror... been keeping busy... excellent..."
Snape spat bitterly on the ground.
Harry left the locker room alone some time later, to take his
Nimbus Two Thousand back to the broomshed. He couldn't ever remember
feeling happier. He'd really done something to be proud of now -- no
one could say he was just a famous name any more. The evening air had
never smelled so sweet. He walked over the damp grass, reliving the
last hour in his head, which was a happy blur: Gryffindors running
to lift him onto their shoulders; Ron and Hermione in the distance,
jumping up and down, Ron cheering through a heavy nosebleed.
Harry had reached the shed. He leaned against the wooden door and
looked up at Hogwarts, with its windows glowing red in the setting
sun. Gryffindor in the lead. He'd done it, he'd shown Snape....
And speaking of Snape...
A hooded figure came swiftly down the front steps of the
castle. Clearly not wanting to be seen, it walked as fast as possible
toward the forbidden forest. Harry's victory faded from his mind
as he watched. He recognized the figure's prowling walk. Snape,
sneaking into the forest while everyone else was at dinner --
what was going on?
Harry jumped back on his Nimbus Two Thousand and took
off. Gliding silently over the castle he saw Snape enter the forest
at a run. He followed.
The trees were so thick he couldn't see where Snape had gone. He
flew in circles, lower and lower, brushing the top branches of trees
until he heard voices. He glided toward them and landed noiselessly
in a towering beech tree.
He climbed carefully along one of the branches, holding tight
to his broomstick, trying to see through the leaves. Below, in a
shadowy clearing, stood Snape, but he wasn't alone. Quirrell was
there, too. Harry couldn't make out the look on his face, but he
was stuttering worse than ever. Harry strained to catch what they
were saying.
"... d-don't know why you wanted t-t-to meet here of all
p-places, Severus..."
"Oh, I thought we'd keep this private," said Snape, his voice
icy. "Students aren't supposed to know about the Sorcerer's Stone,
after all."
Harry leaned forward. Quirrell was mumbling something. Snape
interrupted him.
"Have you found out how to get past that beast of Hagrid's yet?"
"B-b-but Severus, I --"
"You don't want me as your enemy, Quirrell," said Snape, taking
a step toward him.
"I-I don't know what you
"You know perfectly well what I mean."
An owl hooted loudly, and Harry nearly fell out of the tree. He
steadied himself in time to hear Snape say, "-- your little bit of
hocus-pocus. I'm waiting."
"B-but I d-d-don't --"
"Very well," Snape cut in. "We'll have another little chat soon,
when you've had time to think things over and decided where your
loyalties lie."
He threw his cloak over his head and strode out of the
clearing. It was almost dark now, but Harry could see Quirrell,
standing quite still as though he was petrified.
"Harry, where have you been?" Hermione squeaked.
"We won! You won! We won!" shouted Ron, thumping Harry on the
back. "And I gave Malfoy a black eye, and Neville tried to take on
Crabbe and Goyle single-handed! He's still out cold but Madam Pomftey
says he'll be all right - talk about showing Slytherin! Everyone's
waiting for you in the common room, we're having a party, Fred and
George stole some cakes and stuff from the kitchens."
"Never mind that now," said Harry breathlessly. "Let's find an
empty room, you wait 'til you hear this...."
He made sure Peeves wasn't inside before shutting the door
behind them, then he told them what he'd seen and heard.
"So we were right, it is the Sorcerer's Stone, and Snape's trying
to force Quirrell to help him get it. He asked if he knew how to get
past Fluffy - and he said something about Quirrell's 'hocus pocuss--
I reckon there are other things guarding the stone apart from Fluffy,
loads of enchantments, probably, and Quirrell would have done some
anti-Dark Arts spell that Snape needs to break through --"
"So you mean the Stone's only safe as long as Quirrell stands
up to Snape?" said Hermione in alarm.
"It'll be gone by next Tuesday," said Ron.
CHAPTER FOURTEEN
NORBERT THE NORWEGIAN RIDGEBACK
Quirrell, however, must have been braver than they'd thought. In
the weeks that followed he did seem to be getting paler and thinner,
but it didn't look as though he'd cracked yet.
Every time they passed the third-floor corridor, Harry, Ron,
and Hermione would press their ears to the door to check that Fluffy
was still growling inside. Snape was sweeping about in his usual bad
temper, which surely meant that the Stone was still safe. Whenever
Harry passed Quirrell these days he gave him an encouraging sort
of smile, and Ron had started telling people off for laughing at
Quirrell's stutter.
Hermione, however, had more on her mind than the Sorcerer's
Stone. She had started drawing up study schedules and colorcoding
all her notes. Harry and Ron wouldn't have minded, but she kept
nagging them to do the same.
"Hermione, the exams are ages away."
"Ten weeks," Hermione snapped. "That's not ages, that's like
a second to Nicolas Flamel."
"But we're not six hundred years old," Ron reminded her. "Anyway,
what are you studying for, you already know it A."
"What am I studying for? Are you crazy? You realize we need to
pass these exams to get into the second year? They're very important,
I should have started studying a month ago, I don't know what's
gotten into me...."
Unfortunately, the teachers seemed to be thinking along the
same lines as Hermione. They piled so much homework on them that the
Easter holidays weren't nearly as much fun as the Christmas ones. It
was hard to relax with Hermione next to you reciting the twelve uses
of dragon's blood or practicing wand movements. Moaning and yawning,
Harry and Ron spent most of their free time in the library with her,
trying to get through all their extra work.
"I'll never remember this," Ron burst out one afternoon, throwing
down his quill and looking longingly out of the library window. It
was the first really fine day they'd had in months. The sky was a
clear, forget-me-not blue, and there was a feeling in the air of
summer coming.
Harry, who was looking up "Dittany" in One Thousand Magical
Herbs and Fungi, didn't look up until he heard Ron say, "Hagrid! What
are you doing in the library?"
Hagrid shuffled into view, hiding something behind his back. He
looked very out of place in his moleskin overcoat.
"Jus' lookin'," he said, in a shifty voice that got their
interest at once. "An' what're you lot up ter?" He looked suddenly
suspicious. "Yer not still lookin' fer Nicolas Flamel, are yeh?" "Oh,
we found out who he is ages ago," said Ron impressively. "And we
know what that dog's guarding, it's a Sorcerer's St --"
"Shhhh!" Hagrid looked around quickly to see if anyone was
listening. "Don' go shoutin' about it, what's the matter with yeh?"
"There are a few things we wanted to ask you, as a matter of
fact," said Harry, "about what's guarding the Stone apart from
Fluffy --"
"SHHHH!" said Hagrid again. "Listen - come an' see me later, I'm
not promisin' I'll tell yeh anythin', mind, but don' go rabbitin'
about it in here, students aren' s'pposed ter know. They'll think
I've told yeh --"
"See you later, then," said Harry.
Hagrid shuffled off.
"What was he hiding behind his back?" said Hermione thoughtfully.
"Do you think it had anything to do with the Stone?"
"I'm going to see what section he was in," said Ron, who'd had
enough of working. He came back a minute later with a pile of books
in his arms and slammed them down on the table.
"Dragons!" he whispered. "Hagrid was looking up stuff about
dragons! Look at these: Dragon Species of Great Britain and Ireland;
From Egg to Inferno, A Dragon Keeper's Guide."
"Hagrid's always wanted a dragon, he told me so the first time
I ever met him, " said Harry.
"But it's against our laws," said Ron. "Dragon breeding was
outlawed by the Warlocks' Convention of 1709, everyone knows
that. It's hard to stop Muggles from noticing us if we're keeping
dragons in the back garden - anyway, you can't tame dragons, it's
dangerous. You should see the burns Charlie's got off wild ones
in Romania."
"But there aren't wild dragons in Britain?" said Harry.
"Of course there are," said Ron. "Common Welsh Green and
Hebridean Blacks. The Ministry of Magic has a job hushing them up,
I can tell you. Our kind have to keep putting spells on Muggles
who've spotted them, to make them forget."
"So what on earths Hagrid up to?" said Hermione.
When they knocked on the door of the gamekeeper's hut an
hour later, they were surprised to see that all the curtains were
closed. Hagrid called "Who is it?" before he let them in, and then
shut the door quickly behind them.
It was stifling hot inside. Even though it was such a warm day,
there was a blazing fire in the grate. Hagrid made them tea and
offered them stoat sandwiches, which they refused.
"So -- yeh wanted to ask me somethin'?"
"Yes," said Harry. There was no point beating around the
bush. "We were wondering if you could tell us what's guarding the
Sorcerer's Stone apart from Fluffy."
Hagrid frowned at him.
"0' course I cant, he said. "Number one, I don' know
meself. Number two, yeh know too much already, so I wouldn' tell
yeh if I could. That Stone's here fer a good reason. It Was almost
stolen outta Gringotts - I s'ppose yeh've worked that out an'
all? Beats me how yeh even know abou' Fluffy."
"Oh, come on, Hagrid, you might not want to tell us, but you do
know, you know everything that goes on round here," said Hermione
in a warm, flattering voice. Hagrid's beard twitched and they could
tell he was smiling. "We only wondered who had done the guarding,
really." Hermione went on. "We wondered who Dumbledore had trusted
enough to help him, apart from you."
Hagrid's chest swelled at these last words. Harry and Ron beamed
at Hermione.
"Well, I don' s'pose it could hurt ter tell yeh that... let's
see... he borrowed Fluffy from me... then some o' the teachers
did enchantments... Professor Sprout -- Professor Flitwick --
Professor McGonagall --" he ticked them off on his fingers,
"Professor Quirrell -- an' Dumbledore himself did somethin', o'
course. Hang on, I've forgotten someone. Oh yeah, Professor Snape."
"Snape?"
"Yeah -- yer not still on abou' that, are yeh? Look, Snape
helped protect the Stone, he's not about ter steal it."
Harry knew Ron and Hermione were thinking the same as he was. If
Snape had been in on protecting the Stone, it must have been easy
to find out how the other teachers had guarded it. He probably knew
everything -- except, it seemed, Quirrell's spell and how to get
past Fluffy.
"You're the only one who knows how to get past Fluffy. aren't
you, Hagrid?" said Harry anxiously. "And you wouldn't tell anyone,
would you? Not even one of the teachers?"
"Not a soul knows except me an' Dumbledore," said Hagrid proudly.
"Well, that's something," Harry muttered to the others. "Hagrid,
can we have a window open? I'm boiling."
"Can't, Harry, sorry," said Hagrid. Harry noticed him glance
at the fire. Harry looked at it, too.
"Hagrid -- what's that?"
But he already knew what it was. In the very heart of the fire,
underneath the kettle, was a huge, black egg.
"Ah," said Hagrid, fiddling nervously with his beard, "That's
er..."
"Where did you get it, Hagrid?" said Ron, crouching over the fire
to get a closer look at the egg. "It must've cost you a fortune."
"Won it," said Hagrid. "Las' night. I was down in the
village havin' a few drinks an' got into a game o' cards with a
stranger. Think he was quite glad ter get rid of it, ter be honest."
"But what are you going to do with it when it's hatched?" said
Hermione.
"Well, I've bin doin' some readin' , said Hagrid, pulling a
large book from under his pillow. "Got this outta the library --
Dragon Breeding for Pleasure and Profit -- it's a bit outta date,
o' course, but it's all in here. Keep the egg in the fire, 'cause
their mothers breathe on I em, see, an' when it hatches, feed it
on a bucket o' brandy mixed with chicken blood every half hour. An'
see here -- how ter recognize diff'rent eggs -- what I got there's
a Norwegian Ridgeback. They're rare, them."
He looked very pleased with himself, but Hermione didn't.
"Hagrid, you live in a wooden house," she said.
But Hagrid wasn't listening. He was humming merrily as he stoked
the fire.
So now they had something else to worry about: what might happen
to Hagrid if anyone found out he was hiding an illegal dragon in his
hut. "Wonder what it's like to have a peaceful life," Ron sighed, as
evening after evening they struggled through all the extra homework
they were getting. Hermione had now started making study schedules
for Harry and Ron, too. It was driving them nuts.
Then, one breakfast time, Hedwig brought Harry another note
from Hagrid. He had written only two words: It's hatching.
Ron wanted to skip Herbology and go straight down to the
hut. Hermione wouldn't hear of it.
"Hermione, how many times in our lives are we going to see a
dragon hatching?"
"We've got lessons, we'll get into trouble, and that's nothing
to what Hagrid's going to be in when someone finds out what he's
doing --"
"Shut up!" Harry whispered.
Malfoy was only a few feet away and he had stopped dead
to listen. How much had he heard? Harry didn't like the look on
Malfoy's face at all.
Ron and Hermione argued all the way to Herbology and in the end,
Hermione agreed to run down to Hagrid's with the other two during
morning break. When the bell sounded from the castle at the end
of their lesson, the three of them dropped their trowels at once
and hurried through the grounds to the edge of the forest. Hagrid
greeted them, looking flushed and excited.
"It's nearly out." He ushered them inside.
The egg was lying on the table. There were deep cracks in
it. Something was moving inside; a funny clicking noise was coming
from it.
They all drew their chairs up to the table and watched with
bated breath.
All at once there was a scraping noise and the egg split
open. The baby dragon flopped onto the table. It wasn't exactly
pretty; Harry thought it looked like a crumpled, black umbrella. Its
spiny wings were huge compared to its skinny jet body, it had a
long snout with wide nostrils, the stubs of horns and bulging,
orange eyes.
It sneezed. A couple of sparks flew out of its snout.
"Isn't he beautiful?" Hagrid murmured. He reached out a hand
to stroke the dragon's head. It snapped at his fingers, showing
pointed fangs.
"Bless him, look, he knows his mommy!" said Hagrid.
"Hagrid," said Hermione, "how fast do Norwegian Ridgebacks
grow, exactly?"
Hagrid was about to answer when the color suddenly drained from
his face -- he leapt to his feet and ran to the window.
"What's the matter?"
"Someone was lookin' through the gap in the curtains -- it's
a kid -- he's runnin' back up ter the school."
Harry bolted to the door and looked out. Even at a distance
there was no mistaking him.
Malfoy had seen the dragon.
Something about the smile lurking on Malfoy's face during the
next week made Harry, Ron, and Hermione very nervous. They spent
most of their free time in Hagrid's darkened hut, trying to reason
with him.
"Just let him go," Harry urged. "Set him free."
"I can't," said Hagrid. "He's too little. He'd die."
They looked at the dragon. It had grown three times in length in
just a week. Smoke kept furling out of its nostrils. Hagrid hadn't
been doing his gamekeeping duties because the dragon was keeping
him so busy. There were empty brandy bottles and chicken feathers
all over the floor.
"I've decided to call him Norbert," said Hagrid, looking
at the dragon with misty eyes. "He really knows me now,
watch. Norbert! Norbert! Where's Mommy?"
"He's lost his marbles," Ron muttered in Harry's ear.
"Hagrid," said Harry loudly, "give it two weeks and Norbert's
going to be as long as your house. Malfoy could go to Dumbledore
at any moment."
Hagrid bit his lip.
"I -- I know I can't keep him forever, but I can't jus' dump him,
I can't."
Harry suddenly turned to Ron. Charlie, he said.
"You're losing it, too," said Ron. "I'm Ron, remember?"
"No -- Charlie -- your brother, Charlie. In Romania. Studying
dragons. We could send Norbert to him. Charlie can take care of
him and then put him back in the wild!"
"Brilliant!" said Ron. "How about it, Hagrid?"
And in the end, Hagrid agreed that they could send -an owl to
Charlie to ask him.
The following week dragged by. Wednesday night found Hermione
and Harry sitting alone in the common room, long after everyone
else had gone to bed. The clock on the wall had just
chimed midnight when the portrait hole burst open. Ron appeared
out of nowhere as he pulled off Harry's invisibility cloak. He had
been down at Hagrid's hut, helping him feed Norbert, who was now
eating dead rats by the crate.
"It bit me!" he said, showing them his hand, which was wrapped
in a bloody handkerchief. "I'm not going to be able to hold a quill
for a week. I tell you, that dragon's the most horrible animal I've
ever met, but the way Hagrid goes on about it, you'd think it was
a fluffy little bunny rabbit. When it bit me he told me off for
frightening it. And when I left, he was singing it a lullaby."
There was a tap on the dark window.
"It's Hedwig!" said Harry, hurrying to let her in. "She'll have
Charlie's answer!"
The three of them put their heads together to read the note.
Dear Ron,
How are you? Thanks for the letter -- I'd be glad to take the
Norwegian Ridgeback, but it won't be easy getting him here. I think
the best thing will be to send him over with some friends of mine
who are coming to visit me next week. Trouble is, they mustn't be
seen carrying an illegal dragon.
Could you get the Ridgeback up the tallest tower at midnight
on Saturday? They can meet you there and take him away while it's
still dark.
Send me an answer as soon as possible.
Love,
Charlie
They looked at one another.
"We've got the invisibility cloak," said Harry. "It shouldn't
be too difficult -- I think the cloaks big enough to cover two of
us and Norbert."
It was a mark of how bad the last week had been that the other
two agreed with him. Anything to get rid of Norbert -- and Malfoy.
There was a hitch. By the next morning, Ron's bitten hand had
swollen to twice its usual size. He didn't know whether it was safe
to go to Madam Pomfrey -- would she recognize a dragon bite? By
the afternoon, though, he had no choice. The cut had turned a nasty
shade of green. It looked as if Norbert's fangs were poisonous.
Harry and Hermione rushed up to the hospital wing at the end
of the day to find Ron in a terrible state in bed.
"It's not just my hand," he whispered, "although that feels
like it's about to fall off. Malfoy told Madam Pomfrey he wanted
to borrow one of my books so he could come and have a good laugh at
me. He kept threatening to tell her what really bit me -- I've told
her it was a dog, but I don't think she believes me -I shouldn't
have hit him at the Quidditch match, that's why he's doing this."
Harry and Hermione tried to calm Ron down.
"It'll all be over at midnight on Saturday," said Hermione,
but this didn't soothe Ron at all. On the contrary, he sat bolt
upright and broke into a sweat.
"Midnight on Saturday!" he said in a hoarse voice. "Oh no oh
no -- I've just remembered -- Charlie's letter was in that book
Malfoy took, he's going to know we're getting rid of Norbert."
Harry and Hermione didn't get a chance to answer. Madam Pomfrey
came over at that moment and made them leave, saying Ron needed
sleep.
"It's too late to change the plan now," Harry told Hermione. "We
haven't got time to send Charlie another owl, and this could be
our only chance to get rid of Norbert. We'll have to risk it. And
we have got the invisibility cloak, Malfoy doesn't know about that."
They found Fang, the boarhound, sitting outside with a bandaged
tail when they went to tell Hagrid, who opened a window to talk
to them.
"I won't let you in," he puffed. "Norbert's at a tricky stage --
nothin' I can't handle."
When they told him about Charlie's letter, his eyes filled with
tears, although that might have been because Norbert had just bitten
him on the leg.
"Aargh! It's all right, he only got my boot -- jus' playin' --
he's only a baby, after all."
The baby banged its tail on the wall, making the windows
rattle. Harry and Hermione walked back to the castle feeling Saturday
couldn't come quickly enough.
They would have felt sorry for Hagrid when the time came for
him to say good-bye to Norbert if they hadn't been so worried
about what they had to do. It was a very dark, cloudy night, and
they were a bit late arriving at Hagrid's hut because they'd had
to wait for Peeves to get out of their way in the entrance hall,
where he'd been playing tennis against the wall. Hagrid had Norbert
packed and ready in a large crate.
"He's got lots o' rats an' some brandy fer the journey," said
Hagrid in a muffled voice. "An' I've packed his teddy bear in case
he gets lonely."
From inside the crate came ripping noises that sounded to Harry
as though the teddy was having his head torn off.
"Bye-bye, Norbert!" Hagrid sobbed, as Harry and Hermione covered
the crate with the invisibility cloak and stepped underneath it
themselves. "Mommy will never forget you!"
How they managed to get the crate back up to the castle,
they never knew. Midnight ticked nearer as they heaved Norbert
up the marble staircase in the entrance hall and along the dark
corridors. UP another staircase, then another -- even one of Harry's
shortcuts didn't make the work much easier.
"Nearly there!" Harry panted as they reached the corridor
beneath the tallest tower.
Then a sudden movement ahead of them made them almost drop the
crate. Forgetting that they were already invisible, they shrank into
the shadows, staring at the dark outlines of two people grappling
with each other ten feet away. A lamp flared.
Professor McGonagall, in a tartan bathrobe and a hair net,
had Malfoy by the ear.
"Detention!" she shouted. "And twenty points from
Slytherin! Wandering around in the middle of the night, how dare
you --"
"You don't understand, Professor. Harry Potter's coming --
he's got a dragon!"
"What utter rubbish! How dare you tell such lies! Come on --
I shall see Professor Snape about you, Malfoy!"
The steep spiral staircase up to the top of the tower seemed
the easiest thing in the world after that. Not until they'd stepped
out into the cold night air did they throw off the cloak, glad to
be able to breathe properly again. Hermione did a sort of jig.
"Malfoy's got detention! I could sing!"
"Don't," Harry advised her.
Chuckling about Malfoy, they waited, Norbert thrashing about in
his crate. About ten minutes later, four broomsticks came swooping
down out of the darkness.
Charlie's friends were a cheery lot. They showed Harry and
Hermione the harness they'd rigged up, so they could suspend Norbert
between them. They all helped buckle Norbert safely into it and
then Harry and Hermione shook hands with the others and thanked
them very much.
At last, Norbert was going... going... gone.
They slipped back down the spiral staircase, their hearts as
light as their hands, now that Norbert was off them. No more dragon
-- Malfoy in detention -- what could spoil their happiness?
The answer to that was waiting at the foot of the stairs. As
they stepped into the corridor, Filch's face loomed suddenly out
of the darkness.
"Well, well, well," he whispered, "we are in trouble."
They'd left the invisibility cloak on top of the tower.
CHAPTER FIFTEEN
THE FORIBIDDEN FOREST
Things couldn't have been worse.
Filch took them down to Professor McGonagall's study on the
first floor, where they sat and waited without saying a word to each
other. Hermione was trembling. Excuses, alibis, and wild cover- up
stories chased each other around Harry's brain, each more feeble
than the last. He couldn't see how they were going to get out of
trouble this time. They were cornered. How could they have been so
stupid as to forget the cloak? There was no reason on earth that
Professor McGonagall would accept for their being out of bed and
creeping around the school in the dead of night, let alone being
up the tallest astronomy tower, which was out-of-bounds except for
classes. Add Norbert and the invisibility cloak, and they might as
well be packing their bags already.
Had Harry thought that things couldn't have been worse? He was
wrong. When Professor McGonagall appeared, she was leading Neville.
"Harry!" Neville burst Out, the moment he saw the other two. "I
was trying to find you to warn you, I heard Malfoy saying he was
going to catch you, he said you had a drag --"
Harry shook his head violently to shut Neville up, but Professor
McGonagall had seen. She looked more likely to breathe fire than
Norbert as she towered over the three of them.
"I would never have believed it of any of you. Mr. Filch
says you were up in the astronomy tower. It's one o'clock in the
morning. Explain yourselves."
It was the first time Hermione had ever failed to answer a
teacher's question. She was staring at her slippers, as still as
a statue.
"I think I've got a good idea of what's been going on," said
Professor McGonagall. "It doesn't take a genius to work it out. You
fed Draco Malfoy some cock-and-bull story about a dragon, trying
to get him out of bed and into trouble. I've already caught him. I
suppose you think it's funny that Longbottom here heard the story
and believed it, too?"
Harry caught Neville's eye and tried to tell him without words
that this wasn't true, because Neville was looking stunned and
hurt. Poor, blundering Neville -- Harry knew what it must have cost
him to try and find them in the dark, to warn them.
"I'm disgusted," said Professor McGonagall. "Four students out
of bed in one night! I've never heard of such a thing before! You,
Miss Granger, I thought you had more sense. As for you, Mr. Potter,
I thought Gryffindor meant more to you than this. All three of you
will receive detentions -- yes, you too, Mr. Longbottom, nothing
gives you the right to walk around school at night, especially
these days, it's very dangerous -- and fifty points will be taken
from Gryffindor."
"Fifty?" Harry gasped -- they would lose the lead, the lead
he'd won in the last Quidditch match.
"Fifty points each," said Professor McGonagall, breathing
heavily through her long, pointed nose.
"Professor -- please
"You can't --"
"Don't tell me what I can and can't do, Potter. Now get back
to bed, all of you. I've never been more ashamed of Gryffindor
students."
A hundred and fifty points lost. That put Gryffindor in last
place. In one night, they'd ruined any chance Gryffindor had had
for the house cup. Harry felt as though the bottom had dropped out
of his stomach. How could they ever make up for this?
Harry didn't sleep all night. He could hear Neville sobbing
into his pillow for what seemed like hours. Harry couldn't think
of anything to say to comfort him. He knew Neville, like himself,
was dreading the dawn. What would happen when the rest of Gryffindor
found out what they'd done?
At first, Gryffindors passing the giant hourglasses that recorded
the house points the next day thought there'd been a mistake. How
could they suddenly have a hundred and fifty points fewer than
yesterday? And then the story started to spread: Harry Potter, the
famous Harry Potter, their hero of two Quidditch matches, had lo st
them all those points, him and a couple of other stupid first years.
From being one of the most popular and admired people at the
school, Harry was suddenly the most hated. Even Ravenclaws and
Hufflepuffs turned on him, because everyone had been longing to
see Slytherin lose the house cup. Everywhere Harry went, people
pointed and didn't trouble to lower their voices as they insulted
him. Slytherins, on the other hand, clapped as he walked past them,
whistling and cheering, "Thanks Potter, we owe you one!"
Only Ron stood by him.
"They'll all forget this in a few weeks. Fred and George have
lost loads of points in all the time they've been here, and people
still like them."
"They've never lost a hundred and fifty points in one go,
though, have they?" said Harry miserably.
"Well -- no," Ron admitted.
It was a bit late to repair the damage, but Harry swore to
himself not to meddle in things that weren't his business from
now on. He'd had it with sneaking around and spying. He felt so
ashamed of himself that he went to Wood and offered to resign from
the Quidditch team.
"Resign?" Wood thundered. "What good'll that do? How are we
going to get any points back if we can't win at Quidditch?"
But even Quidditch had lost its fun. The rest of the team
wouldn't speak to Harry during practice, and if they had to speak
about him, they called him "the Seeker."
Hermione and Neville were suffering, too. They didn't have as
bad a time as Harry, because they weren't as well-known, but nobody
would speak to them, either. Hermione had stopped drawing attention
to herself in class, keeping her head down and working in silence.
Harry was almost glad that the exams weren't far away. All the
studying he had to do kept his mind off his misery. He, Ron, and
Hermione kept to themselves, working late into the night, trying
to remember the ingredients in complicated potions, learn charms
and spells by heart, memorize the dates of magical discoveries and
goblin rebellions....
Then, about a week before the exams were due to start, Harry's
new resolution not to interfere in anything that didn't concern him
was put to an unexpected test. Walking back from the library on his
own one afternoon, he heard somebody whimpering from a classroom
up ahead. As he drew closer, he heard Quirrell's voice.
"No -- no -- not again, please --"
It sounded as though someone was threatening him. Harry moved
closer.
"All right -- all right --" he heard Quirrell sob.
Next second, Quirrell came hurrying out of the classroom
straightening his turban. He was pale and looked as though he was
about to cry. He strode out of sight; Harry didn't think Quirrell
had even noticed him. He waited until Quirrell's footsteps had
disappeared, then peered into the classroom. It was empty, but
a door stood ajar at the other end. Harry was halfway toward it
before he remembered what he'd promised himself about not meddling.
All the same, he'd have gambled twelve Sorcerer's Stones that
Snape had just left the room, and from what Harry had just heard,
Snape would be walking with a new spring in his step -- Quirrell
seemed to have given in at last.
Harry went back to the library, where Hermione was testing Ron
on Astronomy. Harry told them what he'd heard.
"Snape's done it, then!" said Ron. "If Quirrell's told him how
to break his Anti-Dark Force spell --"
"There's still Fluffy, though," said Hermione.
"Maybe Snape's found out how to get past him without asking
Hagrid," said Ron, looking up at the thousands of books surrounding
them. "I bet there's a book somewhere in here telling you how to
get past a giant three-headed dog. So what do we do, Harry?"
The light of adventure was kindling again in Ron's eyes, but
Hermione answered before Harry could.
"Go to Dumbledore. That's what we should have done ages ago. If
we try anything ourselves we'll be thrown out for sure."
"But we've got no proof!" said Harry. "Quirrell's too scared to
back us up. Snape's only got to say he doesn't know how the troll
got in at Halloween and that he was nowhere near the third floor --
who do you think they'll believe, him or us? It's not exactly a
secret we hate him, Dumbledore'll think we made it up to get him
sacked. Filch wouldn't help us if his life depended on it, he's
too friendly with Snape, and the more students get thrown out,
the better, he'll think. And don't forget, we're not supposed to
know about the Stone or Fluffy. That'll take a lot of explaining."
Hermione looked convinced, but Ron didn't.
"If we just do a bit of poking around --"
"No," said Harry flatly, "we've done enough poking around."
He pulled a map of Jupiter toward him and started to learn the
names of its moons.
The following morning, notes were delivered to Harry, Hermione,
and Neville at the breakfast table. They were all the same:
Your detention will take place at eleven o'clock tonight. Meet
Mr. Filch in the entrance hall.
Professor McGonagall Harry had forgotten they still had
detentions to do in the furor over the points they'd lost. He half
expected Hermione to complain that this was a whole night of studying
lost, but she didn't say a word. Like Harry, she felt they deserved
what they'd got.
At eleven o'clock that night, they said good-bye to Ron in the
common room and went down to the entrance hall with Neville. Filch
was already there -- and so was Malfoy. Harry had also forgotten
that Malfoy had gotten a detention, too.
"Follow me," said Filch, lighting a lamp and leading them
outside.
I bet you'll think twice about breaking a school rule again,
won't you, eh?" he said, leering at them. "Oh yes... hard work and
pain are the best teachers if you ask me.... It's just a pity they
let the old punishments die out... hang you by your wrists from the
ceiling for a few days, I've got the chains still in my office, keep
'em well oiled in case they're ever needed.... Right, off we go, and
don't think of running off, now, it'll be worse for you if you do."
They marched off across the dark grounds. Neville kept
sniffing. Harry wondered what their punishment was going to be. It
must be something really horrible, or Filch wouldn't be sounding
so delighted.
The moon was bright, but clouds scudding across it kept throwing
them into darkness. Ahead, Harry could see the lighted windows of
Hagrid's hut. Then they heard a distant shout.
"Is that you, Filch? Hurry up, I want ter get started."
Harry's heart rose; if they were going to be working with Hagrid
it wouldn't be so bad. His relief must have showed in his -face,
because Filch said, "I suppose you think you'll be enjoying yourself
with that oaf? Well, think again, boy -- it's into the forest you're
going and I'm much mistaken if you'll all come out in one piece."
At this, Neville let out a little moan, and Malfoy stopped dead
in his tracks.
"The forest?" he repeated, and he didn't sound quite as cool
as usual. "We can't go in there at night -- there's all sorts of
things in there -- werewolves, I heard."
Neville clutched the sleeve of Harry's robe and made a choking
noise.
"That's your problem, isn't it?" said Filch, his voice cracking
with glee. "Should've thought of them werewolves before you got in
trouble, shouldn't you?"
Hagrid came striding toward them out of the dark, Fang at his
heel. He was carrying his large crossbow, and a quiver of arrows
hung over his shoulder.
"Abou' time," he said. "I bin waitin' fer half an hour
already. All right, Harry, Hermione?"
"I shouldn't be too friendly to them, Hagrid," said Filch coldly,
they're here to be punished, after all."
"That's why yer late, is it?" said Hagrid, frowning at
Filch. "Bin lecturin' them, eh? 'Snot your place ter do that. Yeh've
done yer bit, I'll take over from here."
"I'll be back at dawn," said Filch, "for what's left of them,"
he added nastily, and he turned and started back toward the castle,
his lamp bobbing away in the darkness.
Malfoy now turned to Hagrid.
"I'm not going in that forest, he said, and Harry was pleased
to hear the note of panic in his voice.
"Yeh are if yeh want ter stay at Hogwarts," said Hagrid
fiercely. "Yeh've done wrong an' now yehve got ter pay fer it."
"But this is servant stuff, it's not for students to do. I
thought we'd be copying lines or something, if my father knew I
was doing this, he'd
tell yer that's how it is at Hogwarts," Hagrid growled. "Copyin'
lines! What good's that ter anyone? Yeh'll do summat useful or
Yeh'll get out. If yeh think yer father'd rather you were expelled,
then get back off ter the castle an' pack. Go on"'
Malfoy didn't move. He looked at Hagrid furiously, but then
dropped his gaze.
"Right then," said Hagrid, "now, listen carefully, 'cause it's
dangerous what we're gonna do tonight, an' I don' want no one takin'
risks. Follow me over here a moment."
He led them to the very edge of the forest. Holding his lamp up
high, he pointed down a narrow, winding earth track that disappeared
into the thick black trees. A light breeze lifted their hair as
they looked into the forest.
"Look there," said Hagrid, "see that stuff shinin' on the
ground? Silvery stuff? That's unicorn blood. There's a unicorn
in there bin hurt badly by summat. This is the second time in a
week. I found one dead last Wednesday. We're gonna try an' find
the poor thing. We might have ter put it out of its misery."
"And what if whatever hurt the unicorn finds us first?" said
Malfoy, unable to keep the fear out of his voice.
"There's nothin' that lives in the forest that'll hurt yeh if
yer with me or Fang," said Hagrid. "An' keep ter the path. Right,
now, we're gonna split inter two parties an' follow the trail in
diff'rent directions. There's blood all over the place, it must've
bin staggerin' around since last night at least."
"I want Fang," said Malfoy quickly, looking at Fang's long teeth.
"All right, but I warn yeh, he's a coward," said Hagrid. "
So me, Harry, an' Hermione'll go one way an' Draco, Neville, an'
Fang'll go the other. Now, if any of us finds the unicorn, we'll
send up green sparks, right? Get yer wands out an' practice now --
that's it -- an' if anyone gets in trouble, send up red sparks,
an' we'll all come an' find yeh -- so, be careful -- let's go."
The forest was black and silent. A little way into it they
reached a fork in the earth path, and Harry, Hermione, and Hagrid
took the left path while Malfoy, Neville, and Fang took the right.
They walked in silence, their eyes on the ground. Every now
and then a ray of moonlight through the branches above lit a spot
of silver-blue blood on the fallen leaves.
Harry saw that Hagrid looked very worried.
"Could a werewolf be killing the unicorns?" Harry asked.
"Not fast enough," said Hagrid. "It's not easy ter catch a
unicorn, they're powerful magic creatures. I never knew one ter be
hurt before."
They walked past a mossy tree stump. Harry could hear running
water; there must be a stream somewhere close by. There were still
spots of unicorn blood here and there along the winding path.
"You all right, Hermione?" Hagrid whispered. "Don' worry, it
can't've gone far if it's this badly hurt, an' then we'll be able
ter -- GET BEHIND THAT TREE!"
Hagrid seized Harry and Hermione and hoisted them off the
path behind a towering oak. He pulled out an arrow and fitted it
into his crossbow, raising it, ready to fire. The three of them
listened. Something was slithering over dead leaves nearby: it
sounded like a cloak trailing along the ground. Hagrid was squinting
up the dark path, but after a few seconds, the sound faded away.
"I knew it, " he murmured. "There's summat in here that shouldn'
be."
"A werewolf?" Harry suggested.
"That wasn' no werewolf an' it wasn' no unicorn, neither,"
said Hagrid grimly. "Right, follow me, but careful, now."
They walked more slowly, ears straining for the faintest
sound. Suddenly, in a clearing ahead, something definitely moved.
"Who's there?" Hagrid called. "Show yerself -- I'm armed!"
And into the clearing came -- was it a man, or a horse? To
the waist, a man, with red hair and beard, but below that was a
horse's gleaming chestnut body with a long, reddish tail. Harry
and Hermione's jaws dropped.
"Oh, it's you, Ronan," said Hagrid in relief. "How are yeh?"
He walked forward and shook the centaur's hand.
"Good evening to you, Hagrid," said Ronan. He had a deep,
sorrowful voice. "Were you going to shoot me?"
"Can't be too careful, Ronan," said Hagrid, patting his
crossbow. "There's summat bad loose in this forest. This is
Harry Potter an' Hermione Granger, by the way. Students up at the
school. An' this is Ronan, you two. He's a centaur.))
"We'd noticed," said Hermione faintly.
"Good evening," said Ronan. "Students, are you? And do you
learn much, up at the school?"
"Erm --"
"A bit," said Hermione timidly.
"A bit. Well, that's something." Ronan sighed. He flung back
his head and stared at the sky. "Mars is bright tonight."
"Yeah," said Hagrid, glancing up, too. "Listen, I'm glad
we've run inter yeh, Ronan, 'cause there's a unicorn bin hurt --
you seen anythin'?"
Ronan didn't answer immediately. He stared unblinkingly upward,
then sighed again.
"Always the innocent are the first victims," he said. "So it
has been for ages past, so it is now."
"Yeah," said Hagrid, "but have yeh seen anythin', Ronan? Anythin'
unusual?"
"Mars is bright tonight," Ronan repeated, while Hagrid watched
him impatiently. "Unusually bright."
"Yeah, but I was meanin' anythin' unusual a bit nearer home,
said Hagrid. "So yeh haven't noticed anythin' strange?"
Yet again, Ronan took a while to answer. At last, he said,
"The forest hides many secrets."
A movement in the trees behind Ronan made Hagrid raise his bow
again, but it was only a second centaur, black-haired and -bodied
and wilder-looking than Ronan.
"Hullo, Bane," said Hagrid. "All right?"
"Good evening, Hagrid, I hope you are well?"
"Well enough. Look, I've jus' bin askin' Ronan, you seen anythin'
odd in here lately? There's a unicorn bin injured -- would yeh know
anythin' about it?"
Bane walked over to stand next to Ronan. He looked skyward. "Mars
is bright tonight," he said simply.
"We've heard," said Hagrid grumpily. "Well, if either of you
do see anythin', let me know, won't yeh? We'll be off, then."
Harry and Hermione followed him out of the clearing, staring over
their shoulders at Ronan and Bane until the trees blocked their view.
"Never," said Hagrid irritably, "try an' get a straight answer
out of a centaur. Ruddy stargazers. Not interested in anythin'
closer'n the moon."
"Are there many of them in here?" asked Hermione.
"Oh, a fair few... Keep themselves to themselves mostly, but
they're good enough about turnin' up if ever I want a word. They're
deep, mind, centaurs... they know things... jus' don' let on much."
"D'you think that was a centaur we heard earlier?" said Harry.
"Did that sound like hooves to you? Nah, if yeh ask me, that
was what's bin killin' the unicorns -- never heard anythin' like
it before."
They walked on through the dense, dark trees. Harry kept looking
nervously over his shoulder. He had the nasty feeling they were
being watched. He was very glad they had Hagrid and his crossbow
with them. They had just passed a bend in the path when Hermione
grabbed Hagrid's arm.
"Hagrid! Look! Red sparks, the others are in trouble!"
"You two wait here!" Hagrid shouted. "Stay on the path, I'll
come back for yeh!"
They heard him crashing away through the undergrowth and stood
looking at each other, very scared, until they couldn't hear anything
but the rustling of leaves around them.
"You don't think they've been hurt, do you?" whispered Hermione.
"I don't care if Malfoy has, but if something's got
Neville... it's our fault he's here in the first place."
The minutes dragged by. Their ears seemed sharper than
usual. Harry's seemed to be picking up every sigh of the wind,
every cracking twig. What was going on? Where were the others?
At last, a great crunching noise announced Hagrid's
return. Malfoy, Neville, and Fang were with him. Hagrid was
fuming. Malfoy, it seemed, had sneaked up behind Neville and grabbed
him as a joke. Neville had panicked and sent up the sparks.
"We'll be lucky ter catch anythin' now, with the racket you two
were makin'. Right, we're changin' groups -- Neville, you stay with
me an' Hermione, Harry, you go with Fang an' this idiot. I'm sorry,"
Hagrid added in a whisper to Harry, "but he'll have a harder time
frightenin' you, an' we've gotta get this done."
So Harry set off into the heart of the forest with Malfoy and
Fang. They walked for nearly half an hour, deeper and deeper into the
forest, until the path became almost impossible to follow because the
trees were so thick. Harry thought the blood seemed to be getting
thicker. There were splashes on the roots of a tree, as though the
poor creature had been thrashing around in pain close by. Harry could
see a clearing ahead, through the tangled branches of an ancient oak.
"Look --" he murmured, holding out his arm to stop Malfoy.
Something bright white was gleaming on the ground. They inched
closer.
It was the unicorn all right, and it was dead. Harry had never
seen anything so beautiful and sad. Its long, slender legs were
stuck out at odd angles where it had fallen and its mane was spread
pearly-white on the dark leaves.
Harry had taken one step toward it when a slithering sound
made him freeze where he stood. A bush on the edge of the clearing
quivered.... Then, out of the shadows, a hooded figure came crawling
across the ground like some stalking beast. Harry, Malfoy, and Fang
stood transfixed. The cloaked figure reached the unicorn, lowered
its head over the wound in the animal's side, and began to drink
its blood.
"AAAAAAAAAARGH!"
Malfoy let out a terrible scream and bolted -- so did Fang. The
hooded figure raised its head and looked right at Harry -- unicorn
blood was dribbling down its front. It got to its feet and came
swiftly toward Harry -- he couldn't move for fear.
Then a pain like he'd never felt before pierced his head; it
was as though his scar were on fire. Half blinded, he staggered
backward. He heard hooves behind him, galloping, and something
jumped clean over Harry, charging at the figure.
The pain in Harry's head was so bad he fell to his knees. It
took a minute or two to pass. When he looked up, the figure had
gone. A centaur was standing over him, not Ronan or Bane; this one
looked younger; he had white-blond hair and a palomino body.
"Are you all right?" said the centaur, pulling Harry to his feet.
"Yes -- thank you -- what was that?"
The centaur didn't answer. He had astonishingly blue eyes, like
pale sapphires. He looked carefully at Harry, his eyes lingering
on the scar that stood out, livid, on Harry's forehead.
"You are the Potter boy," he said. "You had better get back
to Hagrid. The forest is not safe at this time -- especially for
you. Can you ride? It will be quicker this way.
"My name is Firenze," he added, as he lowered himself on to
his front legs so that Harry could clamber onto his back.
There was suddenly a sound of more galloping from the other side
of the clearing. Ronan and Bane came bursting through the trees,
their flanks heaving and sweaty.
"Firenze!" Bane thundered. "What are you doing? You have a
human on your back! Have you no shame? Are you a common mule?"
"Do you realize who this is?" said Firenze. "This is the Potter
boy. The quicker he leaves this forest, the better."
"What have you been telling him?" growled Bane. "Remember,
Firenze, we are sworn not to set ourselves against the heavens. Have
we not read what is to come in the movements of the planets?"
Ronan pawed the ground nervously. "I'm sure Firenze thought he
was acting for the best, " he said in his gloomy voice.
Bane kicked his back legs in anger.
"For the best! What is that to do with us? Centaurs are concerned
with what has been foretold! It is not our business to run around
like donkeys after stray humans in our forest!"
Firenze suddenly reared on to his hind legs in anger, so that
Harry had to grab his shoulders to stay on.
"Do you not see that unicorn?" Firenze bellowed at Bane. "Do
you not understand why it was killed? Or have the planets not let
you in on that secret? I set myself against what is lurking in this
forest, Bane, yes, with humans alongside me if I must."
And Firenze whisked around; with Harry clutching on as best
he could, they plunged off into the trees, leaving Ronan and Bane
behind them.
Harry didn't have a clue what was going on.
"Why's Bane so angry?" he asked. "What was that thing you saved
me from, anyway?"
Firenze slowed to a walk, warned Harry to keep his head
bowed in case of low-hanging branches, but did not answer Harry's
question. They made their way through the trees in silence for
so long that Harry thought Firenze didn't want to talk to him
anymore. They were passing through a particularly dense patch of
trees, however, when Firenze suddenly stopped.
"Harry Potter, do you know what unicorn blood is used -for?"
"No," said Harry, startled by the odd question. "We've only
used the horn and tail hair in Potions."
"That is because it is a monstrous thing, to slay a unicorn,"
said Firenze. "Only one who has nothing to lose, and everything
to gain, would commit such a crime. The blood of a unicorn will
keep you alive, even if you are an inch from death, but at a
terrible price. You have slain something pure and defenseless to
save yourself, and you will have but a half-life, a cursed life,
from the moment the blood touches your lips."
Harry stared at the back of Firenze's head, which was dappled
silver in the moonlight.
"But who'd be that desperate?" he wondered aloud. "If you're
going to be cursed forever, deaths better, isn't it?"
"It is," Firenze agreed, "unless all you need is to stay alive
long enough to drink something else -- something that will bring
you back to full strength and power -- something that will mean
you can never die. Mr. Potter, do you know what is hidden in the
school at this very moment?"
"The Sorcerer's Stone! Of course -- the Elixir of Life! But I
don't understand who --"
"Can you think of nobody who has waited many years to return
to power, who has clung to life, awaiting their chance?"
It was as though an iron fist had clenched suddenly around
Harry's heart. Over the rustling of the trees, he seemed to hear
once more what Hagrid had told him on the night they had met:
"Some say he died. Codswallop, in my opinion. Dunno if he had enough
human left in him to die."
"Do you mean," Harry croaked, "that was Vol-"
"Harry! Harry, are you all right?"
Hermione was running toward them down the path, Hagrid puffing
along behind her.
"I'm fine," said Harry, hardly knowing what he was saying. "The
unicorn's dead, Hagrid, it's in that clearing back there."
"This is where I leave you," Firenze murmured as Hagrid hurried
off to examine the unicorn. "You are safe now."
Harry slid off his back.
"Good luck, Harry Potter," said Firenze. "The planets have been
read wrongly before now, even by centaurs. I hope this is one of
those times."
He turned and cantered back into the depths of the forest,
leaving Harry shivering behind him.
Ron had fallen asleep in the dark common room, waiting for
them to return. He shouted something about Quidditch fouls when
Harry roughly shook him awake. In a matter of seconds, though,
he was wide-eyed as Harry began to tell him and Hermione what had
happened in the forest.
Harry couldn't sit down. He paced up and down in front of the
fire. He was still shaking.
"Snape wants the stone for Voldemort... and Voldemort's waiting
in the forest... and all this time we thought Snape just wanted to
get rich...."
"Stop saying the name!" said Ron in a terrified whisper, as if
he thought Voldemort could hear them.
Harry wasn't listening.
"Firenze saved me, but he shouldn't have done so.... Bane was
furious... he was talking about interfering with what the planets
say is going to happen.... They must show that Voldemort's coming
back.... Bane thinks Firenze should have let Voldemort kill me.... I
suppose that's written in the stars as well."
"Will you stop saying the name!" Ron hissed.
"So all I've got to wait for now is Snape to steal the Stone,"
Harry went on feverishly, "then Voldemort will be able to come and
finish me off... Well, I suppose Bane'll be happy."
Hermione looked very frightened, but she had a word of comfort.
"Harry, everyone says Dumbledore's the only one You-Know-Who
was ever afraid of With Dumbledore around, You-Know-Who won't
touch you. Anyway, who says the centaurs are right? It sounds like
fortune-telling to me, and Professor McGonagall says that's a very
imprecise branch of magic."
The sky had turned light before they stopped talking. They went
to bed exhausted, their throats sore. But the night's surprises
weren't over.
When Harry pulled back his sheets, he found his invisibility
cloak folded neatly underneath them. There was a note pinned to it:
Just in case.
CHAPTER SIXTEEN
THROUGH THE TRAPDOOR
In years to come, Harry would never quite remember how he had
managed to get through his exams when he half expected Voldemort to
come bursting through the door at any moment. Yet the days crept by,
and there could be no doubt that Fluffy was still alive and well
behind the locked door.
It was sweltering hot, especially in the large classroom where
they did their written papers. They had been given special, new
quills for the exams, which had been bewitched with an AntiCheating
spell.
They had practical exams as well. Professor Flitwick called them
one by one into his class to see if they could make a pineapple
tapdance across a desk. Professor McGonagall watched them turn
a mouse into a snuffbox -- points were given for how pretty the
snuffbox was, but taken away if it had whiskers. Snape made them
all nervous, breathing down their necks while they tried to remember
how to make a Forgetfulness potion.
Harry did the best he could, trying to ignore the stabbing
pains in his forehead, which had been bothering him ever since his
trip into the forest. Neville thought Harry had a bad case of exam
nerves because Harry couldn't sleep, but the truth was that Harry
kept being woken by his old nightmare, except that it was now worse
than ever because there was a hooded figure dripping blood in it.
Maybe it was because they hadn't seen what Harry had seen in
the forest, or because they didn't have scars burning on their
foreheads, but Ron and Hermione didn't seem as worried about the
Stone as Harry. The idea of Voldemort certainly scared them, but
he didn't keep visiting them in dreams, and they were so busy with
their studying they didn't have much time to fret about what Snape
or anyone else might be up to.
Their very last exam was History of Magic. One hour of answering
questions about batty old wizards who'd invented selfstirring
cauldrons and they'd be free, free for a whole wonderful week until
their exam results came out. When the ghost of Professor Binns
told them to put down their quills and roll up their parchment,
Harry couldn't help cheering with the rest.
"That was far easier than I thought it would be," said Hermione
as they joined the crowds flocking out onto the sunny grounds. "I
needn't have learned about the 1637 Werewolf Code of Conduct or
the uprising of Elfric the Eager."
Hermione always liked to go through their exam papers afterward,
but Ron said this made him feel ill, so they wandered down to the
lake and flopped under a tree. The Weasley twins and Lee Jordan
were tickling the tentacles of a giant squid, which was basking
in the warm shallows. "No more studying," Ron sighed happily,
stretching out on the grass. "You could look more cheerful, Harry,
we've got a week before we find out how badly we've done, there's
no need to worry yet."
Harry was rubbing his forehead.
"I wish I knew what this means!" he burst out angrily. "My scar
keeps hurting -- it's happened before, but never as often as this."
"Go to Madam Pomfrey," Hermione suggested.
"I'm not ill," said Harry. "I think it's a warning... it means
danger's coming...."
Ron couldn't get worked up, it was too hot.
"Harry, relax, Hermione's right, the Stone's safe as long as
Dumbledore's around. Anyway, we've never had any proof Snape found
out how to get past Fluffy. He nearly had his leg ripped off once,
he's not going to try it again in a hurry. And Neville will play
Quidditch for England before Hagrid lets Dumbledore down."
Harry nodded, but he couldn't shake off a lurking feeling that
there was something he'd forgotten to do, something important. When
he tried to explain this, Hermione said, "That's just the exams. I
woke up last night and was halfway through my Transfiguration notes
before I remembered we'd done that one."
Harry was quite sure the unsettled feeling didn't have anything
to do with work, though. He watched an owl flutter toward the school
across the bright blue sky, a note clamped in its mouth. Hagrid
was the only one who ever sent him letters. Hagrid would never
betray Dumbledore. Hagrid would never tell anyone how to get past
Fluffy... never... but --
Harry suddenly jumped to his feet.
"Where're you going?" said Ron sleepily.
"I've just thought of something," said Harry. He had turned
white. "We've got to go and see Hagrid, now."
"Why?" panted Hermione, hurrying to keep up.
"Don't you think it's a bit odd," said Harry, scrambling up the
grassy slope, "that what Hagrid wants more than anything else is a
dragon, and a stranger turns up who just happens to have an egg in
his pocket? How many people wander around with dragon eggs if it's
against wizard law? Lucky they found Hagrid, don't you think? Why
didn't I see it before?"
"What are you talking about?" said Ron, but Harry, sprinting
across the grounds toward the forest, didn't answer.
Hagrid was sitting in an armchair outside his house; his
trousers and sleeves were rolled up, and he was shelling peas into
a large bowl.
"Hullo," he said, smiling. "Finished yer exams? Got time fer
a drink?"
"Yes, please," said Ron, but Harry cut him off.
"No, we're in a hurry. Hagrid, I've got to ask you something. You
know that night you won Norbert? What did the stranger you were
playing cards with look like?"
"Dunno," said Hagrid casually, "he wouldn' take his cloak off."
He saw the three of them look stunned and raised his eyebrows.
"It's not that unusual, yeh get a lot o' funny folk in the Hog's
Head -- that's the pub down in the village. Mighta bin a dragon
dealer, mightn' he? I never saw his face, he kept his hood up."
Harry sank down next to the bowl of peas. "What did you talk
to him about, Hagrid? Did you mention Hogwarts at all?"
"Mighta come up," said Hagrid, frowning as he tried to
remember. "Yeah... he asked what I did, an' I told him I was
gamekeeper here.... He asked a bit about the sorta creatures I took
after... so I told him... an' I said what I'd always really wanted
was a dragon... an' then... I can' remember too well, 'cause he
kept buyin' me drinks.... Let's see... yeah, then he said he had
the dragon egg an' we could play cards fer it if I wanted... but he
had ter be sure I could handle it, he didn' want it ter go ter any
old home.... So I told him, after Fluffy, a dragon would be easy..."
"And did he -- did he seem interested in Fluffy?" Harry asked,
try ing to keep his voice calm.
"Well -- yeah -- how many three-headed dogs d'yeh meet, even
around Hogwarts? So I told him, Fluffy's a piece o' cake if yeh
know how to calm him down, jus' play him a bit o' music an' he'll
go straight off ter sleep --"
Hagrid suddenly looked horrified.
"I shouldn'ta told yeh that!" he blurted out. "Forget I said
it! Hey -- where're yeh goin'?"
Harry, Ron, and Hermione didn't speak to each other at all
until they came to a halt in the entrance hall, which seemed very
cold and gloomy after the grounds.
"We've got to go to Dumbledore," said Harry. "Hagrid told
that stranger how to get past Fluffy, and it was either Snape or
Voldemort under that cloak -- it must've been easy, once he'd got
Hagrid drunk. I just hope Dumbledore believes us. Firenze might
back us up if Bane doesn't stop him. Where's Dumbledore's office?"
They looked around, as if hoping to see a sign pointing them
in the right direction. They had never been told where Dumbledore
lived, nor did they know anyone who had been sent to see him.
"We'll just have to --" Harry began, but a voice suddenly rang
across the hall.
"What are you three doing inside?"
It was Professor McGonagall, carrying a large pile of books.
"We want to see Professor Dumbledore," said Hermione, rather
bravely, Harry and Ron thought.
"See Professor Dumbledore?" Professor McGonagall repeated,
as though this was a very fishy thing to want to do. "Why?"
Harry swallowed -- now what?
"It's sort of secret," he said, but he wished at once he hadn't,
because Professor McGonagall's nostrils flared.
"Professor Dumbledore left ten minutes ago," she said coldly. "He
received an urgent owl from the Ministry of Magic and flew off for
London at once."
"He's gone?" said Harry frantically. "Now?"
"Professor Dumbledore is a very great wizard, Potter, he has
many demands on his time --
"But this is important."
"Something you have to say is more important than the Ministry
of Magic, Potter.
"Look," said Harry, throwing caution to the winds, "Professor --
it's about the Sorcerer's tone --"
Whatever Professor McGonagall had expected, it wasn't that. The
books she was carrying tumbled out of her arms, but she didn't pick
them up. "How do you know --?" she spluttered.
"Professor, I think -- I know -- that Sn- that someone's going to
try and steal the Stone. I've got to talk to Professor Dumbledore."
She eyed him with a mixture of shock and suspicion.
"Professor Dumbledore will be back tomorrow," she said finally. I
don't know how you found out about the Stone, but rest assured,
no one can possibly steal it, it's too well protected."
"But Professor --"
"Potter, I know what I'm talking about," she said shortly. She
bent down and gathered up the fallen books. I suggest you all go
back outside and enjoy the sunshine."
But they didn't.
"It's tonight," said Harry, once he was sure Professor McGonagall
was out of earshot. "Snape's going through the trapdoor tonight. He's
found out everything he needs, and now he's got Dumbledore out of
the way. He sent that note, I bet the Ministry of Magic will get
a real shock when Dumbledore turns up."
"But what can we --"
Hermione gasped. Harry and Ron wheeled round.
Snape was standing there.
"Good afternoon," he said smoothly.
They stared at him.
"You shouldn't be inside on a day like this," he said, with an
odd, twisted smile.
"We were --" Harry began, without any idea what he was going
to say.
"You want to be more careful," said Snape. "Hanging around
like this, people will think you're up to something. And
Gryffindor really can't afford to lose any more points, can it?"
Harry flushed. They turned to go outside, but Snape called
them back.
"Be warned, Potter -- any more nighttime wanderings and I will
personally make sure you are expelled. Good day to you."
He strode off in the direction of the staffroom.
Out on the stone steps, Harry turned to the others.
"Right, here's what we've got to do," he whispered urgently. "One
of us has got to keep an eye on Snape -- wait outside the staff
room and follow him if he leaves it. Hermione, you'd better do that."
"Why me?"
"It's obvious," said Ron. "You can pretend to be waiting
for Professor Flitwick, you know." He put on a high voice, "'Oh
Professor Flitwick, I'm so worried, I think I got question fourteen
b wrong....'"
"Oh, shut up," said Hermione, but she agreed to go and watch
out for Snape.
"And we'd better stay outside the third-floor corridor," Harry
told Ron. "Come on."
But that part of the plan didn't work. No sooner had they reached
the door separating Fluffy from the rest of the school than Professor
McGonagall turned up again and this time, she lost her temper.
"I suppose you think you're harder to get past than a pack of
enchantments!" she stormed. "Enough of this nonsense! If I hear you
've come anywhere near here again, I'll take another fifty points
from Gryffindor! Yes, Weasley, from my own house!" Harry and Ron went
back to the common room, Harry had just said, "At least Hermione's
on Snape's tail," when the portrait of the Fat Lady swung open and
Hermione came in.
"I'm sorry, Harry!" she wailed. "Snape came out and asked me what
I was doing, so I said I was waiting for Flitwick, and Snape went to
get him, and I've only just got away, I don't know where Snape went."
"Well, that's it then, isn't it?" Harry said.
The other two stared at him. He was pale and his eyes were
glittering.
"I'm going out of here tonight and I'm going to try and get to
the Stone first."
"You're mad!" said Ron.
"You can't!" said Hermione. "After what McGonagall and Snape
have said? You'll be expelled!"
"SO WHAP" Harry shouted. "Don't you understand? If Snape gets
hold of the Stone, Voldemort's coming back! Haven't you heard what
it was like when he was trying to take over? There won't be any
Hogwarts to get expelled from! He'll flatten it, or turn it into
a school for the Dark Arts! Losing points doesn't matter anymore,
can't you see? D'you think he'll leave you and your families alone
if Gryffindor wins the house cup? If I get caught before I can get
to the Stone, well, I'll have to go back to the Dursleys and wait
for Voldemort to find me there, it's only dying a bit later than
I would have, because I'm never going over to the Dark Side! I'm
going through that trapdoor tonight and nothing you two say is
going to stop me! Voldemort killed my parents, remember?"
He glared at them.
"You're right Harry," said Hermione in a small voice.
"I'll use the invisibility cloak," said Harry. "It's just lucky
I got it back."
"But will it cover all three of us?" said Ron.
"All -- all three of us?"
"Oh, come off it, you don't think we'd let you go alone?"
"Of course not," said Hermione briskly. "How do you think you'd
get to the Stone without us? I'd better go and took through my books,
there might be something useful..."
"But if we get caught, you two will be expelled, too."
"Not if I can help it," said Hermione grimly. "Flitwick
told me in secret that I got a hundred and twelve percent on his
exam. They're not throwing me out after that."
After dinner the three of them sat nervously apart in the
common room. Nobody bothered them; none of the Gryffindors had
anything to say to Harry any more, after all. This was the first
night he hadn't been upset by it. Hermione was skimming through
all her notes, hoping to come across one of the enchantments they
were about to try to break. Harry and Ron didn't talk much. Both
of them were thinking about what they were about to do.
Slowly, the room emptied as people drifted off to bed.
"Better get the cloak," Ron muttered, as Lee Jordan finally
left, stretching and yawning. Harry ran upstairs to their dark
dormitory. He putted out the cloak and then his eyes fell on the
flute Hagrid had given him for Christmas. He pocketed it to use on
Fluffy -- he didn't feel much like singing.
He ran back down to the common room.
"We'd better put the cloak on here, and make sure it covers
all three of us -- if Filch spots one of our feet wandering along
on its own --"
"What are you doing?" said a voice from the corner of the
room. Neville appeared from behind an armchair, clutching Trevor the
toad, who looked as though he'd been making another bid for freedom.
"Nothing, Neville, nothing," said Harry, hurriedly putting the
cloak behind his back.
Neville stared at their guilty faces.
"You're going out again," he said.
"No, no, no," said Hermione. "No, we're not. Why don't you go
to bed, Neville?"
Harry looked at the grandfather clock by the door. They couldn't
afford to waste any more time, Snape might even now be playing
Fluffy to sleep.
"You can't go out," said Neville, "you'll be caught
again. Gryffindor will be in even more trouble."
"You don't understand," said Harry, "this is important."
But Neville was clearly steeling himself to do something
desperate.
I won't let you do it," he said, hurrying to stand in front of
the portrait hole. "I'll -- I'll fight you!"
"Neville, "Ron exploded, "get away from that hole and don't be
an idiot --"
"Don't you call me an idiot!" said Neville. I don't think you
should be breaking any more rules! And you were the one who told
me to stand up to people!"
"Yes, but not to us," said Ron in exasperation. "Neville,
you don't know what you're doing."
He took a step forward and Neville dropped Trevor the toad,
who leapt out of sight.
"Go on then, try and hit me!" said Neville, raising his
fists. "I'm ready!"
Harry turned to Hermione.
"Do something," he said desperately.
Hermione stepped forward.
"Neville," she said, "I'm really, really sorry about this."
She raised her wand.
"Petrificus Totalus!" she cried, pointing it at Neville.
Neville's arms snapped to his sides. His legs sprang
together. His whole body rigid, he swayed where he stood and then
fell flat on his face, stiff as a board.
Hermione ran to turn him over. Neville's jaws were jammed
together so he couldn't speak. Only his eyes were moving, looking
at them in horror.
"What've you done to him?" Harry whispered.
"It's the full Body-Bind," said Hermione miserably. "Oh, Neville,
I'm so sorry."
"We had to, Neville, no time to explain," said Harry.
"You'll understand later, Neville," said Ron as they stepped
over him and pulled on the invisibility cloak.
But leaving Neville lying motionless on the floor didn't feel
like a very good omen. In their nervous state, every statue's shadow
looked like Filch, every distant breath of wind sounded like Peeves
swooping down on them. At the foot of the first set of stairs,
they spotted Mrs. Norris skulking near the top.
"Oh, let's kick her, just this once," Ron whispered in Harry's
ear, but Harry shook his head. As they climbed carefully around her,
Mrs. Norris turned her lamplike eyes on them, but didn't do anything.
They didn't meet anyone else until they reached the staircase
up to the third floor. Peeves was bobbing halfway up, loosening
the carpet so that people would trip.
"Who's there?" he said suddenly as they climbed toward him. He
narrowed his wicked black eyes. "Know you're there, even if I can't
see you. Are you ghoulie or ghostie or wee student beastie?"
He rose up in the air and floated there, squinting at them.
"Should call Filch, I should, if something's a-creeping around
unseen."
Harry had a sudden idea.
"Peeves," he said, in a hoarse whisper, "the Bloody Baron has
his own reasons for being invisible."
Peeves almost fell out of the air in shock. He caught himself
in time and hovered about a foot off the stairs.
"So sorry, your bloodiness, Mr. Baron, Sir," he said
greasily. "My mistake, my mistake -- I didn't see you -- of course
I didn't, you're invisible -- forgive old Peevsie his little joke,
sir."
"I have business here, Peeves," croaked Harry. "Stay away from
this place tonight."
"I will, sir, I most certainly will," said Peeves, rising up
in the air again. "Hope your business goes well, Baron, I'll not
bother you."
And he scooted off
"Brilliant, Harry!" whispered Ron.
A few seconds later, they were there, outside the third-floor
corridor -- and the door was already ajar.
"Well, there you are," Harry said quietly, "Snape's already
got past Fluffy."
Seeing the open door somehow seemed to impress upon all three
of them what was facing them. Underneath the cloak, Harry turned
to the other two.
"If you want to go back, I won't blame you," he said. "You can
take the cloak, I won't need it now."
"Don't be stupid," said Ron.
"We're coming," said Hermione.
Harry pushed the door open.
As the door creaked, low, rumbling growls met their ears. All
three of the dog's noses sniffed madly in their direction, even
though it couldn't see them.
"What's that at its feet?" Hermione whispered.
"Looks like a harp," said Ron. "Snape must have left it there."
"It must wake up the moment you stop playing," said Harry. "Well,
here goes..."
He put Hagrid's flute to his lips and blew. It wasn't really a
tune, but from the first note the beast's eyes began to droop. Harry
hardly drew breath. Slowly, the dog's growls ceased -- it tottered
on its paws and fell to its knees, then it slumped to the ground,
fast asleep.
"Keep playing," Ron warned Harry as they slipped out of the
cloak and crept toward the trapdoor. They could feel the dog's hot,
smelly breath as they approached the giant heads. "I think we'll
be able to pull the door open," said Ron, peering over the dog's
back. "Want to go first, Hermione?"
"No, I don't!"
"All right." Ron gritted his teeth and stepped carefully over
the dog's legs. He bent and pulled the ring of the trapdoor, which
swung up and open.
"What can you see?" Hermione said anxiously.
"Nothing -- just black -- there's no way of climbing down,
we'll just have to drop."
Harry, who was still playing the flute, waved at Ron to get
his attention and pointed at himself.
"You want to go first? Are you sure?" said Ron. "I don't know
how deep this thing goes. Give the flute to Hermione so she can
keep him asleep."
Harry handed the flute over. In the few seconds' silence, the
dog growled and twitched, but the moment Hermione began to play,
it fell back into its deep sleep.
Harry climbed over it and looked down through the trapdoor. There
was no sign of the bottom.
He lowered himself through the hole until he was hanging on by
his fingertips. Then he looked up at Ron and said, "If anything
happens to me, don't follow. Go straight to the owlery and send
Hedwig to Dumbledore, right?"
"Right," said Ron.
"See you in a minute, I hope...
And Harry let go. Cold, damp air rushed past him as he fell
down, down, down and -- FLUMP. With a funny, muffled sort of thump
he landed on something soft. He sat up and felt around, his eyes
not used to the gloom. It felt as though he was sitting on some
sort of plant.
"It's okay!" he called up to the light the size of a postage
stamp, which was the open trapdoor, "it's a soft landing, you
can jump!"
Ron followed right away. He landed, sprawled next to Harry.
"What's this stuff?" were his first words.
"Dunno, some sort of plant thing. I suppose it's here to break
the fall. Come on, Hermione!"
The distant music stopped. There was a loud bark from the dog,
but Hermione had already jumped. She landed on Harry's other side.
"We must be miles under the school , she said.
"Lucky this plant thing's here, really," said Ron.
"Lucky!" shrieked Hermione. "Look at you both!"
She leapt up and struggled toward a damp wall. She had to
struggle because the moment she had landed, the plant had started to
twist snakelike tendrils around her ankles. As for Harry and Ron,
their legs had already been bound tightly in long creepers without
their noticing.
Hermione had managed to free herself before the plant got a
firm grip on her. Now she watched in horror as the two boys fought
to pull the plant off them, but the more they strained against it,
the tighter and faster the plant wound around them.
"Stop moving!" Hermione ordered them. "I know what this is --
it's Devil's Snare!"
"Oh, I'm so glad we know what it's called, that's a great help,"
snarled Ron, leaning back, trying to stop the plant from curling
around his neck. "Shut up, I'm trying to remember how to kill
it!" said Hermione.
"Well, hurry up, I can't breathe!" Harry gasped, wrestling with
it as it curled around his chest.
"Devil's Snare, Devil's Snare... what did Professor Sprout
say? -- it likes the dark and the damp
"So light a fire!" Harry choked.
"Yes -- of course -- but there's no wood!" Hermione cried,
wringing her hands.
"HAVE YOU GONE MAD?" Ron bellowed. "ARE YOU A WITCH OR NOT?"
"Oh, right!" said Hermione, and she whipped out her wand,
waved it, muttered something, and sent a jet of the same bluebell
flames she had used on Snape at the plant. In a matter of seconds,
the two boys felt it loosening its grip as it cringed away from the
light and warmth. Wriggling and flailing, it unraveled itself from
their bodies, and they were able to pull free.
"Lucky you pay attention in Herbology, Hermione," said Harry
as he joined her by the wall, wiping sweat off his face.
"Yeah," said Ron, "and lucky Harry doesn't lose his head in a
crisis -- 'there's no wood,' honestly."
"This way," said Harry, pointing down a stone passageway,
which was the only way forward.
All they could hear apart from their footsteps was the gentle
drip of water trickling down the walls. The passageway sloped
downward, and Harry was reminded of Gringotts. With an unpleasant
jolt of the heart, he remembered the dragons said to be guarding
vaults in the wizards' bank. If they met a dragon, a fully-grown
dragon -- Norbert had been bad enough...
"Can you hear something?" Ron whispered.
Harry listened. A soft rustling and clinking seemed to be coming
from up ahead.
"Do you think it's a ghost?"
"I don't know... sounds like wings to me."
"There's light ahead -- I can see something moving."
They reached the end of the passageway and saw before them a
brilliantly lit chamber, its ceiling arching high above them. It
was full of small, jewel-bright birds, fluttering and tumbling all
around the room. On the opposite side of the chamber was a heavy
wooden door.
"Do you think they'll attack us if we cross the room?" said Ron.
"Probably," said Harry. "They don't look very vicious, but I
suppose if they all swooped down at once... well, there's no other
choice... I'll run."
He took a deep breath, covered his face with his arms, and
sprinted across the room. He expected to feel sharp beaks and claws
tearing at him any second, but nothing happened. He reached the
door untouched. He pulled the handle, but it was locked.
The other two followed him. They tugged and heaved at the door,
but it wouldn't budge, not even when Hermione tried her Alohomora
charm.
"Now what?" said Ron.
"These birds... they can't be here just for decoration,"
said Hermione.
They watched the birds soaring overhead, glittering --
glittering?
"They're not birds!" Harry said suddenly. "They're keys! Winged
keys -- look carefully. So that must mean..." he looked around
the chamber while the other two squinted up at the flock of
keys. "... yes -- look! Broomsticks! We've got to catch the key to
the door!"
"But there are hundreds of them!"
Ron examined the lock on the door.
"We're looking for a big, old-fashioned one -- probably silver,
like the handle."
They each seized a broomstick and kicked off into the air,
soaring into the midst of the cloud of keys. They grabbed and
snatched, but the bewitched keys darted and dived so quickly it
was almost impossible to catch one.
Not for nothing, though, was Harry the youngest Seeker
in a century. He had a knack for spotting things other people
didn't. After a minute's weaving about through the whirl of rainbow
feathers, he noticed a large silver key that had a bent wing, as
if it had already been caught and stuffed roughly into the keyhole.
"That one!" he called to the others. "That big one -- there --
no, there -- with bright blue wings -- the feathers are all crumpled
on one side."
Ron went speeding in the direction that Harry was pointing,
crashed into the ceiling, and nearly fell off his broom.
"We've got to close in on it!" Harry called, not taking his
eyes off the key with the damaged wing. "Ron, you come at it from
above -- Hermione, stay below and stop it from going down and I'll
try and catch it. Right, NOW!"
Ron dived, Hermione rocketed upward, the key dodged them both,
and Harry streaked after it; it sped toward the wall, Harry leaned
forward and with a nasty, crunching noise, pinned it against the
stone with one hand. Ron and Hermione's cheers echoed around the
high chamber.
They landed quickly, and Harry ran to the door, the key
struggling in his hand. He rammed it into the lock and turned --
it worked. The moment the lock had clicked open, the key took flight
again, looking very battered now that it had been caught twice.
"Ready?" Harry asked the other two, his hand on the door
handle. They nodded. He pulled the door open.
The next chamber was so dark they couldn't see anything at
all. But as they stepped into it, light suddenly flooded the room
to reveal an astonishing sight.
They were standing on the edge of a huge chessboard, behind the
black chessmen, which were all taller than they were and carved from
what looked like black stone. Facing them, way across the chamber,
were the white pieces. Harry, Ron and Hermione shivered slightly --
the towering white chessmen had no faces.
"Now what do we do?" Harry whispered.
"It's obvious, isn't it?" said Ron. "We've got to play our way
across the room."
Behind the white pieces they could see another door.
"How?" said Hermione nervously.
"I think," said Ron, "we're going to have to be chessmen."
He walked up to a black knight and put his hand out to touch
the knight's horse. At once, the stone sprang to life. The horse
pawed the ground and the knight turned his helmeted head to look
down at Ron.
"Do we -- er -- have to join you to get across?" The black
knight nodded. Ron turned to the other two.
"This needs thinking about he said. I suppose we've got to
take the place of three of the black pieces...."
Harry and Hermione stayed quiet, watching Ron think. Finally
he said, "Now, don't be offended or anything, but neither of you
are that good at chess --"
"We're not offended," said Harry quickly. "Just tell us what
to do."
"Well, Harry, you take the place of that bishop, and Hermione,
YOU 90 next to him instead of that castle."
"What about you?"
"I'm going to be a knight," said Ron.
The chessmen seemed to have been listening, because at these
words a knight, a bishop, and a castle turned their backs on the
white pieces and walked off the board, leaving three empty squares
that Harry, Ron, and Hermione took.
"White always plays first in chess," said Ron, peering across
the board. "Yes... look..."
A white pawn had moved forward two squares.
Ron started to direct the black pieces. They moved silently
wherever he sent them. Harry's knees were trembling. What if
they lost?
"Harry -- move diagonally four squares to the right."
Their first real shock came when their other knight was
taken. The white queen smashed him to the floor and dragged him
off the board, where he lay quite still, facedown.
"Had to let that happen," said Ron, looking shaken. "Leaves
you free to take that bishop, Hermione, go on."
Every time one of their men was lost, the white pieces showed
no mercy. Soon there was a huddle of limp black players slumped
along the wall. Twice, Ron only just noticed in time that Harry
and Hermione were in danger. He himself darted around the board,
taking almost as many white pieces as they had lost black ones.
"We're nearly there," he muttered suddenly. "Let me think let
me think..."
The white queen turned her blank face toward him.
"Yes..." said Ron softly, "It's the only way... I've got to
be taken."
"NOF Harry and Hermione shouted.
"That's chess!" snapped Ron. "You've got to make some
sacrifices! I take one step forward and she'll take me -- that
leaves you free to checkmate the king, Harry!"
"But --"
"Do you want to stop Snape or not?"
"Ron --"
"Look, if you don't hurry up, he'll already have the Stone!"
There was no alternative.
"Ready?" Ron called, his face pale but determined. "Here I go -
now, don't hang around once you've won."
He stepped forward, and the white queen pounced. She struck
Ron hard across the head with her stone arm, and he crashed to
the floor - Hermione screamed but stayed on her square - the white
queen dragged Ron to one side. He looked as if he'd been knocked out.
Shaking, Harry moved three spaces to the left.
The white king took off his crown and threw it at Harry's
feet. They had won. The chessmen parted and bowed, leaving the door
ahead clear. With one last desperate look back at Ron, Harry and
Hermione charged through the door and up the next passageway.
"What if he's --?"
"He'll be all right," said Harry, trying to convince
himself. "What do you reckon's next?"
"We've had Sprout's, that was the Devil's Snare; Flitwick must've
put charms on the keys; McGonagall transfigured the chessmen to
make them alive; that leaves Quirrell's spell, and Snape's."
They had reached another door.
"All right?" Harry whispered.
"Go on."
Harry pushed it open.
A disgusting smell filled their nostrils, making both of them
pull their robes up over their noses. Eyes watering, they saw,
flat on the floor in front of them, a troll even larger than the
one they had tackled, out cold with a bloody lump on its head.
"I'm glad we didn't have to fight that one," Harry whispered
as they stepped carefully over one of its massive legs. "Come on,
I can't breathe."
He pulled open the next door, both of them hardly daring to look
at what came next - but there was nothing very frightening in here,
just a table with seven differently shaped bottles standing on it
in a line.
"Snape's," said Harry. "What do we have to do?"
They stepped over the threshold, and immediately a fire sprang
up behind them in the doorway. It wasn't ordinary fire either;
it was purple. At the same instant, black flames shot up in the
doorway leading onward. They were trapped.
"Look!" Hermione seized a roll of paper lying next to the
bottles. Harry looked over her shoulder to read it:
Danger lies before you, while safety lies behind,
Two of us will help you, which ever you would find,
One among us seven will let you move ahead,
Another will transport the drinker back instead,
Two among our number hold only nettle wine,
Three of us are killers, waiting bidden in line.
Choose, unless you wish to stay here forevermore,
To help you in your choice, we give you these clues four:
First, however slyly the poison tries to hide
You will always find some on nettle wine's left side;
Second, different are those who stand at either end,
But if you would move onward, neither is your friend;
Third, as you see clearly, all are different size,
Neither dwarf nor giant holds death in their insides;
Fourth, the second left and the second on the right
Are twins once you taste them, though different at first sight.
Hermione let out a great sigh and Harry, amazed, saw that she
was smiling, the very last thing he felt like doing.
"Brilliant," said Hermione. "This isn't magic -- it's logic --
a puzzle. A lot of the greatest wizards haven't got an ounce of
logic, they'd be stuck in here forever."
"But so will we, won't we?" "Of course not," said
Hermione. "Everything we need is here on this paper. Seven bottles:
three are poison; two are wine; one will get us safely through the
black fire, and one will get us back through the purple."
"But how do we know which to drink?"
"Give me a minute."
Hermione read the paper several times. Then she walked up and
down the line of bottles, muttering to herself and pointing at
them. At last, she clapped her hands.
"Got it," she said. "The smallest bottle will get us through
the black fire -- toward the Stone."
Harry looked at the tiny bottle.
"There's only enough there for one of us," he said. "That's
hardly one swallow."
They looked at each other.
"Which one will get you back through the purple flames?"
Hermione pointed at a rounded bottle at the right end of
the line.
"You drink that," said Harry. "No, listen, get back and get
Ron. Grab brooms from the flying- key room, they'll get you out of
the trapdoor and past Fluffy -- go straight to the owlery and send
Hedwig to Dumbledore, we need him. I might be able to hold Snape
off for a while, but I'm no match for him, really."
"But Harry -- what if You-Know-Who's with him?"
"Well -- I was lucky once, wasn't I?" said Harry, pointing at
his scar. "I might get lucky again."
Hermione's lip trembled, and she suddenly dashed at Harry and
threw her arms around him.
"Hermione!"
"Harry -- you're a great wizard, you know."
"I'm not as good as you," said Harry, very embarrassed, as she
let go of him.
"Me!" said Hermione. "Books! And cleverness! There are more
important things -- friendship and bravery and -- oh Harry --
be careful!"
"You drink first," said Harry. "You are sure which is which,
aren't you?"
"Positive," said Hermione. She took a long drink from the round
bottle at the end, and shuddered.
"It's not poison?" said Harry anxiously.
"No -- but it's like ice."
"Quick, go, before it wears off."
"Good luck -- take care."
"GO!"
Hermione turned and walked straight through the purple fire.
Harry took a deep breath and picked up the smallest bottle. He
turned to face the black flames.
"Here I come," he said, and he drained the little bottle in
one gulp.
It was indeed as though ice was flooding his body. He put the
bottle down and walked forward; he braced himself, saw the black
flames licking his body, but couldn't feel them -- for a moment he
could see nothing but dark fire -- then he was on the other side,
in the last chamber.
There was already someone there -- but it wasn't Snape. It
wasn't even Voldemort.
CHAPTER SEVENTEEN
THE MAN WITH TWO FACES
It was Quirrell.
"You!" gasped Harry.
Quirrell smiled. His face wasn't twitching at all.
"Me," he said calmly. "I wondered whether I'd be meeting you
here, Potter."
"But I thought -- Snape --"
"Severus?" Quirrell laughed, and it wasn't his usual quivering
treble, either, but cold and sharp. "Yes, Severus does seem the
type, doesn't he? So useful to have him swooping around like an
overgrown bat. Next to him, who would suspect p-p-poor, st-stuttering
P-Professor Quirrell?"
Harry couldn't take it in. This couldn't be true, it couldn't.
"But Snape tried to kill me!"
"No, no, no. I tried to kill you. Your friend Miss Granger
accidentally knocked me over as she rushed to set fire to Snape at
that Quidditch match. She broke my eye contact with you. Another
few seconds and I'd have got you off that broom. I'd have managed
it before then if Snape hadn't been muttering a countercurse,
trying to save you."
"Snape was trying to save me?"
"Of course," said Quirrell coolly. "\Why do you think he wanted
to referee your next match? He was trying to make sure I didn't do
it again. Funny, really... he needn't have bothered. I couldn't do
anything with Dumbledore watching. All the other teachers thought
Snape was trying to stop Gryffindor from winning, he did make
himself unpopular... and what a waste of time, when after all that,
I'm going to kill you tonight."
Quirrell snapped his fingers. Ropes sprang out of thin air and
wrapped themselves tightly around Harry.
"You're too nosy to live, Potter. Scurrying around the school
on Halloween like that, for all I knew you'd seen me coming to look
at what was guarding the Stone."
"You let the troll in?"
"Certainly. I have a special gift with trolls -- you must have
seen what I did to the one in the chamber back there? Unfortunately,
while everyone else was running around looking for it, Snape, who
already suspected me, went straight to the third floor to head me
off -- and not only did my troll fail to beat you to death, that
three-headed dog didn't even manage to bite Snape's leg off properly.
"Now, wait quietly, Potter. I need to examine this interesting
mirror.
It was only then that Harry realized what was standing behind
Quirrell. It was the Mirror of Erised.
"This mirror is the key to finding the Stone," Quirrell murmured,
tapping his way around the frame. "Trust Dumbledore to come up with
something like this... but he's in London... I'll be far away by
the time he gets back...."
All Harry could think of doing was to keep Quirrell talking
and stop him from concentrating on the mirror.
"I saw you and Snape in the forest --" he blurted out.
"Yes," said Quirrell idly, walking around the mirror to look
at the back. "He was on to me by that time, trying to find out
how far I'd got. He suspected me all along. Tried to frighten me -
as though he could, when I had Lord Voldemort on my side...."
Quirrell came back out from behind the mirror and stared hungrily
into it.
"I see the Stone... I'm presenting it to my master... but where
is it?"
Harry struggled against the ropes binding him, but they didn't
give. He had to keep Quirrell from giving his whole attention to
the mirror.
"But Snape always seemed to hate me so much."
"Oh, he does," said Quirrell casually, "heavens, yes. He was
at Hogwarts with your father, didn't you know? They loathed each
other. But he never wanted you dead."
"But I heard you a few days ago, sobbing -- I thought Snape
was threatening you...."
For the first time, a spasm of fear flitted across Quirrell's
face.
"Sometimes," he said, "I find it hard to follow my master's
instructions -- he is a great wizard and I am weak --"
"You mean he was there in the classroom with you?" Harry gasped.
"He is with me wherever I go," said Quirrell quietly. "I met him
when I traveled around the world. A foolish young man I was then,
full of ridiculous ideas about good and evil. Lord Voldemort showed
me how wrong I was. There is no good and evil, there is only power,
and those too weak to seek it.... Since then, I have served him
faithfully, although I have let him down many times. He has had to be
very hard on me." Quirrell shivered suddenly. "He does not forgive
mistakes easily. When I failed to steal the stone from Gringotts,
he was most displeased. He punished me... decided he would have to
keep a closer watch on me...."
Quirrell's voice trailed away. Harry was remembering his trip to
Diagon Alley -how could he have been so stupid? He'd seen Quirrell
there that very day, shaken hands with him in the Leaky Cauldron.
Quirrell cursed under his breath.
"I don't understand... is the Stone inside the mirror? Should
I break it?"
Harry's mind was racing.
What I want more than anything else in the world at the moment,
he thought, is to find the Stone before Quirrell does. So if I
look in the mirror, I should see myseff finding it -- which means
I'll see where it's hidden! But how can I look without Quirrell
realizing what I'm up to?
He tried to edge to the left, to get in front of the glass
without Quirrell noticing, but the ropes around his ankles were
too tight: he tripped and fell over. Quirrell ignored him. He was
still talking to himself. "What does this mirror do? How does it
work? Help me, Master!"
And to Harry's horror, a voice answered, and the voice seemed
to come from Quirrell himself
"Use the boy... Use the boy..."
Quirrell rounded on Harry.
"Yes -- Potter -- come here."
He clapped his hands once, and the ropes binding Harry fell
off. Harry got slowly to his feet.
"Come here," Quirrell repeated. "Look in the mirror and tell
me what you see."
Harry walked toward him.
I must lie, he thought desperately. I must look and lie about
what I see, that's all.
Quirrell moved close behind him. Harry breathed in the funny
smell that seemed to come from Quirrell's turban. He closed his eyes,
stepped in front of the mirror, and opened them again.
He saw his reflection, pale and scared-looking at first. But
a moment later, the reflection smiled at him. It put its hand
into its pocket and pulled out a blood-red stone. It winked and
put the Stone back in its pocket -- and as it did so, Harry felt
something heavy drop into his real pocket. Somehow -- incredibly --
he'd gotten the Stone.
"Well?" said Quirrell impatiently. "What do you see?"
Harry screwed up his courage.
"I see myself shaking hands with Dumbledore," he invented. "I --
I've won the house cup for Gryffindor."
Quirrell cursed again.
"Get out of the way," he said. As Harry moved aside, he felt
the Sorcerer's Stone against his leg. Dare he make a break for it?
But he hadn't walked five paces before a high voice spoke,
though Quirrell wasn't moving his lips.
"He lies... He lies..."
"Potter, come back here!" Quirrell shouted. "Tell me the
truth! What did you just see?"
The high voice spoke again.
"Let me speak to him... face-to-face..."
"Master, you are not strong enough!"
"I have strength enough... for this...."
Harry felt as if Devil's Snare was rooting him to the spot. He
couldn't move a muscle. Petrified, he watched as Quirrell reached
up and began to unwrap his turban. What was going on? The turban
fell away. Quirrell's head looked strangely small without it. Then
he turned slowly on the spot.
Harry would have screamed, but he couldn't make a sound. Where
there should have been a back to Quirrell's head, there was a face,
the most terrible face Harry had ever seen. It was chalk white with
glaring red eyes and slits for nostrils, like a snake.
"Harry Potter..." it whispered.
Harry tried to take a step backward but his legs wouldn't move.
"See what I have become?" the face said. "Mere shadow and
vapor ... I have form only when I can share another's body... but
there have always been those willing to let me into their hearts and
minds.... Unicorn blood has strengthened me, these past weeks... you
saw faithful Quirrell drinking it for me in the forest... and once
I have the Elixir of Life, I will be able to create a body of my
own.... Now... why don't you give me that Stone in your pocket?"
So he knew. The feeling suddenly surged back into Harry's
legs. He stumbled backward.
"Don't be a fool," snarled the face. "Better save your own life
and join me... or you'll meet the same end as your parents.... They
died begging me for mercy..."
"LIAR!" Harry shouted suddenly.
Quirrell was walking backward at him, so that Voldemort could
still see him. The evil face was now smiling.
"How touching..." it hissed. "I always value bravery... Yes,
boy, your parents were brave.... I killed your father first;
and he put up a courageous fight... but your mother needn't have
died... she was trying to protect you.... Now give me the Stone,
unless you want her to have died in vain."
"NEVER!"
Harry sprang toward the flame door, but Voldemort screamed "SEIZE
HIM!" and the next second, Harry felt Quirrell's hand close on his
wrist. At once, a needle-sharp pain seared across Harry's scar;
his head felt as though it was about to split in two; he yelled,
struggling with all his might, and to his surprise, Quirrell let go
of him. The pain in his head lessened -- he looked around wildly to
see where Quirrell had gone, and saw him hunched in pain, looking
at his fingers -- they were blistering before his eyes.
"Seize him! SEIZE HIM!" shrieked Voldemort again, and Quirrell
lunged, knocking Harry clean off his feet' landing on top of him,
both hands around Harry's neck -- Harry's scar was almost blinding
him with pain, yet he could see Quirrell howling in agony.
"Master, I cannot hold him -- my hands -- my hands!"
And Quirrell, though pinning Harry to the ground with his knees,
let go of his neck and stared, bewildered, at his own palms --
Harry could see they looked burned, raw, red, and shiny.
"Then kill him, fool, and be done!" screeched Voldemort.
Quirrell raised his hand to perform a deadly curse, but Harry,
by instinct, reached up and grabbed Quirrell's face --
"AAAARGH!"
Quirrell rolled off him, his face blistering, too, and then
Harry knew: Quirrell couldn't touch his bare skin, not without
suffering terrible pain -- his only chance was to keep hold of
Quirrell, keep him in enough pain to stop him from doing a curse.
Harry jumped to his feet, caught Quirrell by the arm, and hung
on as tight as he could. Quirrell screamed and tried to throw Harry
off -- the pain in Harry's head was building -- he couldn't see -- he
could only hear Quirrell's terrible shrieks and Voldemort's yells of,
"KILL HIM! KILL HIM!" and other voices, maybe in Harry's own head,
crying, "Harry! Harry!"
He felt Quirrell's arm wrenched from his grasp, knew all was
lost, and fell into blackness, down ... down... down...
Something gold was glinting just above him. The Snitch! He
tried to catch it, but his arms were too heavy.
He blinked. It wasn't the Snitch at all. It was a pair of
glasses. How strange.
He blinked again. The smiling face of Albus Dumbledore swam
into view above him.
"Good afternoon, Harry," said Dumbledore. Harry stared at
him. Then he remembered: "Sir! The Stone! It was Quirrell! He's
got the Stone! Sir, quick --"
"Calm yourself, dear boy, you are a little behind the times,"
said Dumbledore. "Quirrell does not have the Stone."
"Then who does? Sir, I --"
"Harry, please relax, or Madam Pomfrey will have me thrown out.
Harry swallowed and looked around him. He realized he must be in
the hospital wing. He was lying in a bed with white linen sheets,
and next to him was a table piled high with what looked like half
the candy shop.
"Tokens from your friends and admirers," said Dumbledore,
beaming. "What happened down in the dungeons between you and
Professor Quirrell is a complete secret, so, naturally, the whole
school knows. I believe your friends Misters Fred and George Weasley
were responsible for trying to send you a toilet seat. No doubt
they thought it would amuse you. Madam Pomfrey, however, felt it
might not be very hygienic, and confiscated it."
"How long have I been in here?"
"Three days. Mr. Ronald Weasley and Miss Granger will be most
relieved you have come round, they have been extremely worried."
"But sit, the Stone
I see you are not to be distracted. Very well, the
Stone. Professor Quirrell did not manage to take it from you. I
arrived in time to prevent that, although you were doing very well
on your own, I must say.
"You got there? You got Hermione's owl?"
"We must have crossed in midair. No sooner had I reached London
than it became clear to me that the place I should be was the one
I had just left. I arrived just in time to pull Quirrell off you."
"It was you."
"I feared I might be too late."
"You nearly were, I couldn't have kept him off the Stone much
longer --"
"Not the Stone, boy, you -- the effort involved nearly killed
you. For one terrible moment there, I was afraid it had. As for
the Stone, it has been destroyed."
"Destroyed?" said Harry blankly. "But your friend -- Nicolas
Flamel --"
"Oh, you know about Nicolas?" said Dumbledore, sounding quite
delighted. "You did do the thing properly, didn't you? Well, Nicolas
and I have had a little chat, and agreed it's all for the best."
"But that means he and his wife will die, won't they?"
"They have enough Elixir stored to set their affairs in order
and then, yes, they will die."
Dumbledore smiled at the look of amazement on Harry's face.
"To one as young as you, I'm sure it seems incredible, but to
Nicolas and Perenelle, it really is like going to bed after a very,
very long day. After all, to the well-organized mind, death is but
the next great adventure. You know, the Stone was really not such a
wonderful thing. As much money and life as you could want! The two
things most human beings would choose above all -- the trouble is,
humans do have a knack of choosing precisely those things that are
worst for them." Harry lay there, lost for words. Dumbledore hummed
a little and smiled at the ceiling.
"Sir?" said Harry. "I've been thinking... sir -- even if the
Stone's gone, Vol-, I mean, You-Know- Who --"
"Call him Voldemort, Harry. Always use the proper name for
things. Fear of a name increases fear of the thing itself."
"Yes, sir. Well, Voldemort's going to try other ways of coming
back, isn't he? I mean, he hasn't gone, has he?"
"No, Harry, he has not. He is still out there somewhere,
perhaps looking for another body to share... not being truly alive,
he cannot be killed. He left Quirrell to die; he shows just as
little mercy to his followers as his enemies. Nevertheless, Harry,
while you may only have delayed his return to power, it will merely
take someone else who is prepared to fight what seems a losing
battle next time -- and if he is delayed again, and again, why,
he may never return to power."
Harry nodded, but stopped quickly, because it made his head
hurt. Then he said, "Sir, there are some other things I'd like
to know, if you can tell me... things I want to know the truth
about...."
"The truth." Dumbledore sighed. "It is a beautiful and terrible
thing, and should therefore be treated with great caution. However, I
shall answer your questions unless I have a very good reason not to,
in which case I beg you'll forgive me. I shall not, of course, lie."
"Well... Voldemort said that he only killed my mother because
she tried to stop him from killing me. But why would he want to
kill me in the first place?"
Dumbledore sighed very deeply this time.
"Alas, the first thing you ask me, I cannot tell you. Not
today. Not now. You will know, one day... put it from your mind
for now, Harry. When you are older... I know you hate to hear
this... when you are ready, you will know."
And Harry knew it would be no good to argue.
"But why couldn't Quirrell touch me?"
"Your mother died to save you. If there is one thing Voldemort
cannot understand, it is love. He didn't realize that love as
powerful as your mother's for you leaves its own mark. Not a scar, no
visible sign... to have been loved so deeply, even though the person
who loved us is gone, will give us some protection forever. It is
in your very skin. Quirrell, full of hatred, greed, and ambition,
sharing his soul with Voldemort, could not touch you for this
reason. It was agony to touch a person marked by something so good."
Dumbledore now became very interested in a bird out on the
windowsill, which gave Harry time to dry his eyes on the sheet. When
he had found his voice again, Harry said, "And the invisibility
cloak - do you know who sent it to me?"
"Ah - your father happened to leave it in my possession, and
I thought you might like it." Dumbledore's eyes twinkled. "Useful
things... your father used it mainly for sneaking off to the kitchens
to steal food when he was here."
"And there's something else..."
"Fire away."
"Quirrell said Snape --"
"Professor Snape, Harry." "Yes, him -- Quirrell said he hates
me because he hated my father. Is that true?"
"Well, they did rather detest each other. Not unlike yourself
and Mr. Malfoy. And then, your father did something Snape could
never forgive."
"What?"
"He saved his life."
"What?"
"Yes..." said Dumbledore dreamily. "Funny, the way people's
minds work, isn't it? Professor Snape couldn't bear being in your
father's debt.... I do believe he worked so hard to protect you this
year because he felt that would make him and your father even. Then
he could go back to hating your father's memory in peace...."
Harry tried to understand this but it made his head pound,
so he stopped.
"And sir, there's one more thing..."
"Just the one?"
"How did I get the Stone out of the mirror?"
"Ah, now, I'm glad you asked me that. It was one of my more
brilliant ideas, and between you and me, that's saying something. You
see, only one who wanted to find the Stone -- find it, but not use
it -- would be able to get it, otherwise they'd just see themselves
making gold or drinking Elixir of Life. My brain surprises even
me sometimes.... Now, enough questions. I suggest you make a
start on these sweets. Ah! Bettie Bott's Every Flavor Beans! I was
unfortunate enough in my youth to come across a vomitflavored one,
and since then I'm afraid I've rather lost my liking for them --
but I think I'll be safe with a nice toffee, don't you?"
He smiled and popped the golden-brown bean into his mouth. Then
he choked and said, "Alas! Ear wax!"
Madam Pomfrey, the nurse, was a nice woman, but very strict.
"Just five minutes," Harry pleaded.
"Absolutely not."
"You let Professor Dumbledore in..."
"Well, of course, that was the headmaster, quite different. You
need rest."
"I am resting, look, lying down and everything. Oh, go on,
Madam Pomfrey..."
"Oh, very well," she said. "But five minutes only."
And she let Ron and Hermione in.
"Harry!"
Hermione looked ready to fling her arms around him again, but
Harry was glad she held herself in as his head was still very sore.
"Oh, Harry, we were sure you were going to -- Dumbledore was
so worried --"
"The whole school's talking about it," said Ron. "What really
happened?"
It was one of those rare occasions when the true story is even
more strange and exciting than the wild rumors. Harry told them
everything: Quirrell; the mirror; the Stone; and Voldemort. Ron and
Hermione were a very good audience; they gasped in all the right
places, and when Harry told them what was under Quirrell's turban,
Hermione screamed out loud.
"So the Stone's gone?" said Ron finally. "Flamel's just going
to die?"
"That's what I said, but Dumbledore thinks that -- what was
it? -- 'to the well-organized mind, death is but the next great
adventure.
"I always said he was off his rocker," said Ron, looking quite
impressed at how crazy his hero was.
"So what happened to you two?" said Harry.
"Well, I got back all right," said Hermione. "I brought Ron
round -- that took a while -- and we were dashing up to the owlery
to contact Dumbledore when we met him in the entrance hall --
he already knew -- he just said, 'Harry's gone after him, hasn't
he?' and hurtled off to the third floor."
"D'you think he meant you to do it?" said Ron. "Sending you
your father's cloak and everything?"
"Well, " Hermione exploded, "if he did -- I mean to say that's
terrible -- you could have been killed."
"No, it isn't," said Harry thoughtfully. "He's a funny man,
Dumbledore. I think he sort of wanted to give me a chance. I think
he knows more or less everything that goes on here, you know. I
reckon he had a pretty good idea we were going to try, and instead
of stopping us, he just taught us enough to help. I don't think it
was an accident he let me find out how the mirror worked. It's almost
like he thought I had the right to face Voldemort if I could...."
"Yeah, Dumbledore's off his rocker, all right," said Ron
proudly. "Listen, you've got to be up for the end-of-year feast
tomorrow. The points are all in and Slytherin won, of course --
you missed the last Quidditch match, we were steamrollered by
Ravenclaw without you -- but the food'll be good."
At that moment, Madam Pomfrey bustled over.
"You've had nearly fifteen minutes, now OUT" she said firmly.
After a good night's sleep, Harry felt nearly back to normal.
I want to go to the feast," he told Madam Pomfrey as she
straightened his many candy boxes. I can, can't I?"
"Professor Dumbledore says you are to be allowed to go," she
said stiffily, as though in her opinion Professor Dumbledore didn't
realize how risky feasts could be. "And you have another visitor."
"Oh, good," said Harry. "Who is it?"
Hagrid sidled through the door as he spoke. As usual when he
was indoors, Hagrid looked too big to be allowed. He sat down next
to Harry, took one look at him, and burst into tears.
"It's -- all -- my -- ruddy -- fault!" he sobbed, his face in
his hands. I told the evil git how ter get past Fluffy! I told
him! It was the only thing he didn't know, an' I told him! Yeh
could've died! All fer a dragon egg! I'll never drink again! I
should be chucked out an' made ter live as a Muggle!"
"Hagrid!" said Harry, shocked to see Hagrid shaking with grief
and remorse, great tears leaking down into his beard. "Hagrid,
he'd have found out somehow, this is Voldemort we're talking about,
he'd have found out even if you hadn't told him."
"Yeh could've died!" sobbed Hagrid. "An' don' say the name!"
"VOLDEMORT!" Harry bellowed, and Hagrid was so shocked,
he stopped crying. "I've met him and I'm calling him by his
name. Please cheer up, Hagrid, we saved the Stone, it's gone,
he can't use it. Have a Chocolate Frog, I've got loads...."
Hagrid wiped his nose on the back of his hand and said, "That
reminds me. I've got yeh a present."
"It's not a stoat sandwich, is it?" said Harry anxiously, and at
last Hagrid gave a weak chuckle. "Nah. Dumbledore gave me the day
off yesterday ter fix it. 'Course, he shoulda sacked me instead --
anyway, got yeh this..."
It seemed to be a handsome, leather-covered book. Harry opened
it curiously. It was full of wizard photographs. Smiling and waving
at him from every page were his mother and father.
"Sent owls off ter all yer parents' old school friends, askin'
fer photos... knew yeh didn' have any... d'yeh like it?"
Harry couldn't speak, but Hagrid understood.
Harry made his way down to the end-of-year feast alone that
night. He had been held up by Madam Pomfrey's fussing about,
insisting on giving him one last checkup, so the Great Hall was
already full. It was decked out in the Slytherin colors of green
and silver to celebrate Slytherin's winning the house cup for the
seventh year in a row. A huge banner showing the Slytherin serpent
covered the wall behind the High Table.
When Harry walked in there was a sudden hush, and then everybody
started talking loudly at once. He slipped into a seat between Ron
and Hermione at the Gryffindor table and tried to ignore the fact
that people were standing up to look at him.
Fortunately, Dumbledore arrived moments later. The babble
died away.
"Another year gone!" Dumbledore said cheerfully. "And I must
trouble you with an old man's wheezing waffle before we sink our
teeth into our delicious feast. What a year it has been! Hopefully
your heads are all a little fuller than they were... you have
the whole summer ahead to get them nice and empty before next
year starts....
"Now, as I understand it, the house cup here needs awarding,
and the points stand thus: In fourth place, Gryffindor, with
three hundred and twelve points; in third, Hufflepuff, with three
hundred and fifty-two; Ravenclaw has four hundred and twenty-six
and Slytherin, four hundred and seventy- two."
A storm of cheering and stamping broke out from the Slytherin
table. Harry could see Draco Malfoy banging his goblet on the
table. It was a sickening sight.
"Yes, Yes, well done, Slytherin," said Dumbledore. "However,
recent events must be taken into account."
The room went very still. The Slytherins' smiles faded a little.
"Ahem," said Dumbledore. "I have a few last-minute points to
dish out. Let me see. Yes...
"First -- to Mr. Ronald Weasley..."
Ron went purple in the face; he looked like a radish with a
bad sunburn.
"...for the best-played game of chess Hogwarts has seen in many
years, I award Gryffindor house fifty points."
Gryffindor cheers nearly raised the bewitched ceiling; the
stars overhead seemed to quiver. Percy could be heard telling the
other prefects, "My brother, you know! My youngest brother! Got
past McGonagall's giant chess set!"
At last there was silence again.
"Second -- to Miss Hermione Granger... for the use of cool
logic in the face of fire, I award Gryffindor house fifty points."
Hermione buried her face in her arms; Harry strongly suspected
she had burst into tears. Gryffindors up and down the table were
beside themselves -- they were a hundred points up. "Third -- to
Mr. Harry Potter..." said Dumbledore. The room went deadly quiet
for pure nerve and outstanding courage, I award Gryffindor house
sixty points."
The din was deafening. Those who could add up while yelling
themselves hoarse knew that Gryffindor now had four hundred and
seventy-two points -- exactly the same as Slytherin. They had tied
for the house cup -- if only Dumbledore had given Harry just one
more point.
Dumbledore raised his hand. The room gradually fell silent.
"There are all kinds of courage," said Dumbledore, smiling. "It
takes a great deal of bravery to stand up to our enemies, but just
as much to stand up to our friends. I therefore award ten points
to Mr. Neville Longbottom."
Someone standing outside the Great Hall might well have thought
some sort of explosion had taken place, so loud was the noise that
erupted from the Gryffindor table. Harry, Ron, and Hermione stood up
to yell and cheer as Neville, white with shock, disappeared under
a pile of people hugging him. He had never won so much as a point
for Gryffindor before. Harry, still cheering, nudged Ron in the
ribs and pointed at Malfoy, who couldn't have looked more stunned
and horrified if he'd just had the Body-Bind Curse put on him.
"Which means, Dumbledore called over the storm of applause,
for even Ravenclaw and Hufflepuff were celebrating the downfall of
Slytherin, "we need a little change of decoration."
He clapped his hands. In an instant, the green hangings became
scarlet and the silver became gold; the huge Slytherin serpent
vanished and a towering Gryffindor lion took its place. Snape
was shaking Professor McGonagall's hand, with a horrible, forced
smile. He caught Harry's eye and Harry knew at once that Snape's
feelings toward him hadn't changed one jot. This didn't worry
Harry. It seemed as though life would be back to normal next year,
or as normal as it ever was at Hogwarts.
It was the best evening of Harry's life, better than winning
at Quidditch, or Christmas, or knocking out mountain trolls... he
would never, ever forget tonight.
Harry had almost forgotten that the exam results were still to
come, but come they did. To their great surprise, both he and Ron
passed with good marks; Hermione, of course, had the best grades of
the first years. Even Neville scraped through, his good Herbology
mark making up for his abysmal Potions one. They had hoped that
Goyle, who was almost as stupid as he was mean, might be thrown
out, but he had passed, too. It was a shame, but as Ron said,
you couldn't have everything in life.
And suddenly, their wardrobes were empty, their trunks were
packed, Neville's toad was found lurking in a corner of the toilets;
notes were handed out to all students, warning them not to use magic
over the holidays ("I always hope they'll forget to give us these,"
said Fred Weasley sadly); Hagrid was there to take them down to the
fleet of boats that sailed across the lake; they were boarding the
Hogwarts Express; talking and laughing as the countryside became
greener and tidier; eating Bettie Bott's Every Flavor Beans as they
sped past Muggle towns; pulling off their wizard robes and putting
on jackets and coats; pulling into platform nine and three-quarters
at King's Cross Station.
It took quite a while for them all to get off the platform. A
wizened old guard was up by the ticket barrier, letting them go
through the gate in twos and threes so they didn't attract attention
by all bursting out of a solid wall at once and alarming the Muggles.
"You must come and stay this summer," said Ron, "both of you --
I'll send you an owl."
"Thanks," said Harry, "I'll need something to look forward
to." People jostled them as they moved forward toward the gateway
back to the Muggle world. Some of them called:
"Bye, Harry!"
"See you, Potter!"
"Still famous," said Ron, grinning at him.
"Not where I'm going, I promise you," said Harry.
He, Ron, and Hermione passed through the gateway together. "There
he is, Mom, there he is, look!"
It was Ginny Weasley, Ron's younger sister, but she wasn't
pointing at Ron.
"Harry Potter!" she squealed. "Look, Mom! I can see
"Be quiet, Ginny, and it's rude to point."
Mrs. Weasley smiled down at them.
"Busy year?" she said.
"Very," said Harry. "Thanks for the fudge and the sweater,
Mrs. Weasley."
"Oh, it was nothing, dear."
"Ready, are you?"
It was Uncle Vernon, still purple-faced, still mustached,
still looking furious at the nerve of Harry, carrying an owl in a
cage in a station full of ordinary people. Behind him stood Aunt
Petunia and Dudley, looking terrified at the very sight of Harry.
"You must be Harry's family!" said Mrs. Weasley.
"In a manner of speaking," said Uncle Vernon. "Hurry up, boy,
we haven't got all day." He walked away.
Harry hung back for a last word with Ron and Hermione.
"See you over the summer, then."
"Hope you have -- er -- a good holiday," said Hermione, looking
uncertainly after Uncle Vernon, shocked that anyone could be so
unpleasant.
"Oh, I will," said Harry, and they were surprised at the grin
that was spreading over his face. "They don't know we're not allowed
to use magic at home. I'm going to have a lot of fun with Dudley
this summer...."
THE END
¡¾ www.4020.com.cn £¬ 4020µç×ÓÊ飬µç×ÓÊéÏÂÔØ£¬Ëѹθ÷ÀàTXTС˵¡£»¶ÓÄúÀ´ÍƼöºÃÊ飡¡¿